The Romane conclaue VVherein, by way of history, exemplified vpon the liues of the Romane emperours, from Charles the Great, to Rodulph now reigning; the forcible entries, and vsurpations of the Iesuited statists, successiuely practised against the sacred maiestie of the said empire: and so by application, against the residue of the Christian kings, and free-states are liuely acted, and truely reported. By Io. Vrsinus ante-Iesuite. Speculum Jesuiticum. English Beringer, Joachim. 1609 Approx. 443 KB of XML-encoded text transcribed from 120 1-bit group-IV TIFF page images. Text Creation Partnership, Ann Arbor, MI ; Oxford (UK) : 2007-10 (EEBO-TCP Phase 1). A14210 STC 24526 ESTC S118919 99854126 99854126 19533 This keyboarded and encoded edition of the work described above is co-owned by the institutions providing financial support to the Early English Books Online Text Creation Partnership. This Phase I text is available for reuse, according to the terms of Creative Commons 0 1.0 Universal . The text can be copied, modified, distributed and performed, even for commercial purposes, all without asking permission. Early English books online. (EEBO-TCP ; phase 1, no. A14210) Transcribed from: (Early English Books Online ; image set 19533) Images scanned from microfilm: (Early English books, 1475-1640 ; 1041:13) The Romane conclaue VVherein, by way of history, exemplified vpon the liues of the Romane emperours, from Charles the Great, to Rodulph now reigning; the forcible entries, and vsurpations of the Iesuited statists, successiuely practised against the sacred maiestie of the said empire: and so by application, against the residue of the Christian kings, and free-states are liuely acted, and truely reported. By Io. Vrsinus ante-Iesuite. Speculum Jesuiticum. English Beringer, Joachim. Gentillet, Innocent, ca. 1535-ca. 1595, attributed name. [4], 167, 176-243, [1] p. Printed [by John Windet] for Iohn Iagger, and are to be sold at his shop in Fleetestreete within Temple Barre, London : 1609. Io. Vrsinus = Joachim Beringer. A translation of: Speculum Jesuiticum. Sometimes attributed to Innocent Gentillet. Printer's name from STC. Reproduction of the original in the Henry E. Huntington Library and Art Gallery. Created by converting TCP files to TEI P5 using tcp2tei.xsl, TEI @ Oxford. Re-processed by University of Nebraska-Lincoln and Northwestern, with changes to facilitate morpho-syntactic tagging. Gap elements of known extent have been transformed into placeholder characters or elements to simplify the filling in of gaps by user contributors. EEBO-TCP is a partnership between the Universities of Michigan and Oxford and the publisher ProQuest to create accurately transcribed and encoded texts based on the image sets published by ProQuest via their Early English Books Online (EEBO) database (http://eebo.chadwyck.com). The general aim of EEBO-TCP is to encode one copy (usually the first edition) of every monographic English-language title published between 1473 and 1700 available in EEBO. EEBO-TCP aimed to produce large quantities of textual data within the usual project restraints of time and funding, and therefore chose to create diplomatic transcriptions (as opposed to critical editions) with light-touch, mainly structural encoding based on the Text Encoding Initiative (http://www.tei-c.org). The EEBO-TCP project was divided into two phases. The 25,363 texts created during Phase 1 of the project have been released into the public domain as of 1 January 2015. Anyone can now take and use these texts for their own purposes, but we respectfully request that due credit and attribution is given to their original source. Users should be aware of the process of creating the TCP texts, and therefore of any assumptions that can be made about the data. Text selection was based on the New Cambridge Bibliography of English Literature (NCBEL). If an author (or for an anonymous work, the title) appears in NCBEL, then their works are eligible for inclusion. Selection was intended to range over a wide variety of subject areas, to reflect the true nature of the print record of the period. In general, first editions of a works in English were prioritized, although there are a number of works in other languages, notably Latin and Welsh, included and sometimes a second or later edition of a work was chosen if there was a compelling reason to do so. Image sets were sent to external keying companies for transcription and basic encoding. Quality assurance was then carried out by editorial teams in Oxford and Michigan. 5% (or 5 pages, whichever is the greater) of each text was proofread for accuracy and those which did not meet QA standards were returned to the keyers to be redone. After proofreading, the encoding was enhanced and/or corrected and characters marked as illegible were corrected where possible up to a limit of 100 instances per text. Any remaining illegibles were encoded as s. Understanding these processes should make clear that, while the overall quality of TCP data is very good, some errors will remain and some readable characters will be marked as illegible. Users should bear in mind that in all likelihood such instances will never have been looked at by a TCP editor. The texts were encoded and linked to page images in accordance with level 4 of the TEI in Libraries guidelines. Copies of the texts have been issued variously as SGML (TCP schema; ASCII text with mnemonic sdata character entities); displayable XML (TCP schema; characters represented either as UTF-8 Unicode or text strings within braces); or lossless XML (TEI P5, characters represented either as UTF-8 Unicode or TEI g elements). Keying and markup guidelines are available at the Text Creation Partnership web site . eng Catholic Church -- Controversial literature -- Early works to 1800. Papacy -- History -- Early works to 1800. Europe -- History -- Early works to 1800. 2006-04 TCP Assigned for keying and markup 2006-10 SPi Global Keyed and coded from ProQuest page images 2006-12 Emma (Leeson) Huber Sampled and proofread 2006-12 Emma (Leeson) Huber Text and markup reviewed and edited 2007-02 pfs Batch review (QC) and XML conversion THE ROMANE CONCLAVE . Wherein , by way of HISTORY , exemplified vpon the Liues of the Romane Emperours , from CHARLES the Great , to RODVLPH now Reigning ; The forcible Entries , and Vsurpations of the Iesuited Statists , successiuely practised against the sacred Maiestie of the said EMPIRE : And so by Application , against the Residue of the CHRISTIAN KINGS , and FREE-STATES are liuely Acted , and truely Reported . By IO. VRSINVS Ante-Iesuite . Io. de Turre-cremat . de Illicitis dispensat . Ecclesia iuribus & legibus regitur , siue debet regi ; Non talibus actibus , siue exemplis . D. AND. Fol. 46. Dum enim Henrici , Frederici , Lodouici pugnant : Sultani , Chami , Ottomani , miserâ nostrâ magni sunt , ditiones suas perditione nostra dilatârunt . LONDON Printed for Iohn Iagger , and are to be sold at his Shop in Fleetestreete within Temple Barre . 1609. ¶ The Names of the Authours out of whose Records , these memorials are Collected . Auentine . Bartolus . Barnus de vitis Pontif. Benno . Blondus . Catal. testium verit . Collenutius . Cuspinian . The Decretals . Aeneas Siluius . Feronius . Functius . Gunther . Guicciardine . Hub. Goltz . Helmoldius . Hutenus . Ioan. de Cremona . Iouius . Krantzius . Gerard Moringus . Munster . Mutius . Nauclerus . Otho Frisingensis . Pandulfus . Paral. Vrsperg . Petrus de Vineis . Platina . Radauicus . Sleydan . Ia. Spigelij Annot. Theodore de Nyem . Tritemnius . Ab. Vrspergensis . Wimphelinagus Ger. Zeigl . de vir . illust . German . ¶ To the vnresolued Reader , Peace and Profit . IN Disputations words multiply words : In tedious Discourses ( for the most part ) groūded vpon the sole Authority of running reason , small satisfaction is afforded to weake consciences . In this Argument , I must confesse , matters of weightie consequence are debated ; The Romish Prelates are accused of Intrusion and Vsurpation : And they againe , as stiffely maintaine faire and filiall vsage , with successiue diuolution . To what purpose were it then , for any man how learned , or zealous soeuer , to inforce his vtmost indeuours , to put end to a Controuersied question ; If when all hath beene said , that Truth and Learning can alleadge : Euery passionate and discontented Humorist may take vpon him with colours and cunning distinctions , to oppose and contradict his opposites Assertions . In this case , what conscience can but remaine distracted in vtramque partem ? The Disputants on either side , are men of admirable reputation for their learning . Both of them bring warrant ( or at least ) seeme to bring warrant to maintaine their partie . Yet oftentimes vpon priuate passion , so impertinently and maliciously , that either they seeme not to haue read the Authours whome they quote ; Or hauing read them , they doe not vnderstand them , or vnderstanding them , they doe of purpose misconster them . Vpon which conceite it should seeme , that this our Ante-Iesuite , in assured hope to worke more by Example , then Discourse , hath purposely declined these ambiguous Disputations ; And in liew therof hath brought vpon the stage of Iudgement , Time and Testimonie , Veritatis parentes , to pleade nothing for themselues , but matter on Record . A course that hath seldome in so doubtfull a Controuersie beene presented to Audience . The Remembrancers were men without Exception , and some of them by testimonies on either side , Genere , pietate , & eruditione Nobilissimi , atque harum rerum Testes pene oculati : Their names and credits you are acquainted with ; your vnderstandings will informe you of their Maners , and the Times , wherein , and vnder whome they flourished . Nothing then remaineth , but a rectified conscience , to make true vse of the Application . Which to effect , behold our Ante-jesuite , hath not onely runne the truest and plainest Path-way to confidence , but also in old and auncient fashion , hath of purpose thus attired his Actors , that the busiest-headed Iesuite that euer put pen to Paper , may rather with impudencie cauill at Antiquitie , then with his fierie wit , become a stumbling-blocke to the wauering , by Excepting to his Pen or Person . You your selues sit Iudges ; and as vnpreiudicated Arbitrators examine the Pleas : Both parties are at the Barre , and shall produce their best Titles , euen Titles of prescription . Whereunto , how-euer Paul plant , or Apollo water , Let that great God who searcheth the reines , and loueth nothing but Trueth , giue a plentifull increase to the restauration of his reformed kingdome , Amen . Thine in Assurance , C. H. A TRVE RELATION BY WAY OF HISTORIE , DISCOVRSING VPON THE TRECHERIES , INSOLENCIES , AND Tyrannies , which the Romane Popes from time to time haue practised , vpon , and against the sacred Maiestie of the GERMAINE Empire : And so by insinuation , vpon all Christian Kings , Princes , and free Common-weales . AMongst the manifolde and infinite choyce of Precedents , arguing and prouing , God himselfe , to bee both the Parent and Protector of Order : Herein especially appeareth the most euident and remarkeable Confirmation thereof ; In that all those godly and goodly Conformities ( whereby from euerlasting , Religion , and the vnfained zeale thereof , together with the mutuall references of Humane life , and Ciuill societie , haue beene by due and orderly proceedings maintained and perfected ) haue tended euen from the prime-birth of Mankind , by admirable prouidence , to aduance the Priesthood to gouerne the Church , and the Temporall Magistrate to take care of the Commonwealth ; and Both distinguished by their peculiar Orders and Dignities , without intermedling one in anothers Office. For albeit the fathers of the Old Testament , Abel , Seth , Noah , Abraham , and Iacob , who liued before the promulgation of the written Law , are registred to be sole Gouernours aswell of Religion as of Lay-matters : and that in succeeding ages , both amongst the Egyptians , and many other Nations ( the presidents no doubt being taken from the examples of the foresaid Patriarkes ) none by the authoritie of Plato were chosen to be Kings , but such as formerly had beene interessed in the administration of their Religious ceremonies : yet by the written Law of Moses , God manifested his determinate pleasure in distinguishment of eithers Authoritie : The Priests to Teach , to Sacrifice , to Pray : The Princes with the people , to sit in iudgement , to obserue Discipline , to procure Peace , and that according to Order and Equitie . In the new Priesthood , in the New Testament ( being the very institution of Christ the Sonne of God , and the Sauiour of the world , ) Himselfe , being ordained by the will of his Father , a Prince , and a Priest for euer , vtterly refusing to intermeddle in Temporall gouernement , tooke vpon him the charge of Spirituall matters onely : For that , his Kingdome was from eternitie and celestiall , not transitorie and politicall . For he knew , That in his Kingdome , worldly matters , temporarie , vaine , and passeable , were not to be managed ; but blessings heauenly and euerlasting to be distributed . Whereupon he gaue Pilate , demaunding him as concerning his Temporalitie , this sweete answere , That , His kingdome was not of this world : Neither that he came to be ministred vnto , but to minister ; Yea , to lay down his life for the saluation of many . And when the multitude would haue created him a King , hee auoyded it . The iudgement , or portion of an offered inheritance , he refused : And not onely commanded to giue vnto Caesar , that which was Caesars ; but where the tribute money was demanded ( lest he should giue an euill president to others ) the Siluer being taken out from the Fishes mouth , he deliuered it vnto the Kings Officers . Moreouer , when he vnderstood that his Disciples distracted through the ambition of superioritie , contended for Primacie , hee told them ; That not they , but Temporall Princes were to affect Soueraigntie ; hereby putting them in minde of their Calling , as dis-vnited from worldly Gouernement , and humane Policies . At last , after his glorious resurrection , he sent them to Preach the Gospel ouer the whole world , but with no other Commission , then what he himselfe had receiued from his Father . Intimating by this Mandat , that they were neuer called , nor chosen for Lordship , but that through the Preaching of the Gospel , and the glad tidings of saluation , they were bound to beget a Congregation to the Father in eternitie : That , Him they should loue , feare and inuocate with all their power : And being astonished with no torments , calumnies nor threates , they should not forbeare to confesse his holy Name before all men . That , in Prayer , they should carie themselues zealously , faithfully , constantly , modestly , soberly , and chastly : That , vpon cause of offences , they should studie mildnesse ; compassion towards good men oppressed , and patience amidst their miseries : That , by the bond of peace , they should retaine vnitie of spirit ; And finally , that casting away the care of earthly easements , they should meekly indure pouertie , and worldly displeasures , that thus by their doctrine , and example of life , Christ might be glorified , the Church increased , and their Ministerie admired . And surely the Apostles , and their successors , in all their trauailes ouer the face of the earth , thus vndertaken by the commandement of their Master , so behaued themselues in all occurrances , but especially in this obseruancie of difference betweene politicall Gouernement and Ecclesiasticall orders , that by this note onely they were acknowledged to bee the true Disciples and followers of their glorified Master . For they not onely Preached with puritie the euerlasting will of God ( without intermingling of humane fancies ) but also , in all places accustomed to teach ; That vpon earth Caesars ( Kings ) were to bee acknowledged next vnto God , and to be reuerenced before all other mortall men ; They stiled them their Lords , payed them tribute , made intercession vnto God for their welfare ; And vnto such as spake euill of the Magistrate , they threatned reuenge from aboue . From all worldly affaires , especially from the abuse of Armes , they abhorred ; Knowing that the twofold sword of the Church was intrusted to saluation and regeneration , and not for distruction . So farre were they euen from imagination , to thinke it lawfull to disenthronize any King or Potentate , though a most wicked one ; either to absolue his people from their Othes of Allegiance , or to proue masteries with him about Precedencies . But rather they thought it a worke worthy their calling , by the space of two hundred and seuentie yeeres , to suffer most bitter and terrible persecutions , and those too rather to bee indured by stedfast faith in Christ Iesus , by zealous calling vpon his Name , and by glorious Martyrdome ; then by rebellious impatiencie , and violent Meditation of requitall ; And all this , not without admirable increase , and good successe to the Church of Christ . For in what Age was the face of the Church more amiable , or liker the head thereof , euen Christ Iesus , then when after his ascension , his Disciples ( striuing to fulfill his Testament ; and their successors , treading in the very same footesteps ) Preached faithfully and purely the Gospel through Iudaea , Samaria , and Palestine ? After that , when so glorious and conspicuous , as when with their fellow labourers , taking their Iournyes towards other Nations , but especially towards Rome ( at that time the chiefe Seate of the Empire ) and the bordering Regions , they imployed their times in dressing , in Planting and in watering the Lords vineyard , viz. From the time of Linus to Siluester , and Caesar Constantine by the space of two hundred and fiftie yeeres , vnder most vnsufferable Persecutions , euen to the losse of their liues and dearest bloods ? But assoone as Constantine by the diuine prouidence had giuen peace to the afflicted Churches , and that the Bishops being deliuered from their lurking corners , from Vaults and from dennes , wherein during the time of Persecution they had safe conducted their bodies , then , I say , shamed they not to giue themselues ouer to the delights of the world , to vnprofitable idlenesse : to liue a pleasurable life ; to degenerate from the wayes of their predecessors , through neglect of Gods word , being wholly seduced with carnall affections . Then began they to giue coulorable clothing to the doctrine of Christ and his Apostles , by Canons , Decretals , and Ceremonies : Then began they to deuise new appellations of Dignitie : To preferre one Church before all other , and finally blushed not to confound all orders both Ciuill and Ecclesiasticall . Whereupon presently followed so vniuersall a confusion of Doctrine , Discipline and Order , that they no longer seemed to represent the late Pastours of the Lords flocke , but rauening Wolues ; not Priests but blasphemers ; not Doctors but deiectors of soules from the sweete aspect of the face of God. For surely , they did not onely obscure in a wonderous maner the sinceritie of the Christian doctrine by their humane traditions ; gaue it so great a scandall by superstitious impietie , and heathenish inuocation of Soules departed ; and so wickedly polluted it with blasphemous Idolatrie ; But all honestie and discipline being troden vnderfoote , in all seducement and oppression of veritie , they spent their whole dayes in Sodomiticall abuses , in Wantonnesse , in Luxurie , in Ribaldrie , in Whoring , in Sacrilege , in Contention , in Necromancie , in Charmes , in Homicide , and such like transgressions : And that more is , being possessed with a diabolical affectation of Gouernment & pride , cleane contrarie to the Diuine commandement , they began to busie themselues in secular affaires ; to withdrawe their faiths from the subiection of Kings , to vsurpe vpon other mens patrimonies ; to thrust in their crooked Syckles ( and that at aduenture ) into another mans Haruest ; to arrogate both Presences ; to challenge the iurisdiction of both Swords ; to tollerate no equall , much lesse no Superiour ; to defraude one of his right , an other of his Honour ; to giue Law to Kings , and prescribe them ordinances ; basely to esteeme of Emperours , as if they reigned at will ; to accurse them and murder them ; To set Princes together by the eares ; to sow dissentions ; to patronize factions ; to absolue Subiects from their Othes of Allegiance ; and finally by their nouell and slie Policies , to mooue them to vnlawfull Rebellions : So farre forth , that after they had once pleaded prescription in their incrochments , they more defaced the Maiestie of the Romane Empire , by their dissimulations , slaughters , warre , and such varieties of wickednesses , then any forraine or barbarous enemy could haue done by the Sword or violence . For to let passe the Empire of the East , ruinated by the cunning and slie cariage of the Romane Bishops , the Grecians being first expulsed Italy by the Lombards , and presently ( they againe being oppressed by the French ) called in against Astulphus King of the Lombards , for calling vpon Steuen the second for his Subsidy money : Euery man that is any thing seene in Historie , knoweth ( the Romane Empire being by the prowes of Charles the Great , transferred from the Grecians to the Germanes ) how the Emperours of Germanie haue beene harried by the incredible subtilties and combinations of the Romane Bishops ; wearied with most lamentable warres , and lastly the goodly and most flourishing forces of the Empire by their vngodlinesse disvnited , impouerished , and wasted . Surely the remembrance of these times are so distastfull and lamentable , that I had rather wash them out with teares , then aggrauate them by speech : But fithence our Pen is fallen into repetition thereof , I perswade my selfe , that it shall proue neither a digression from my proiect , neither impertinent from the point of our Argument , to Paint out in most liuely colours , what hath beene the humilitie , obseruancie , loyaltie & obedience of the Roman Bishops manifested throughout all Ages , sithence the dayes of the aforesaid Charles towards the most worthy Germane Emperors , their very good Lords and especiall benefactors . ❧ Charles the Great . TO begin therefore with the Frenchmen , who first transferred the Empire from the Grecians to the Germanes : who liueth so ignorant , that knoweth not , with what immunities and honourable indowments they adorned the Romane Clergie ? First , Charles surnamed the Great , to his eternall renowne deliuered that Sea , being most grieuously laide vnto by Desiderius King of the Lombards , to the vtter confusion of his Armie . Against Herisigus Duke of Benouent , he likewise defended his frontiers : And presently after that , hee restored Leo the third to his Sea , at Baryona , being expulsed from Rome by the faction of his aduersaries . ❧ Lewes surnamed Pius . This man was Emperour in the yeere of Christ eight hundred and fourteene , at what time Egbright gouerned the West Saxons , and first called our Countrey Anglia . LEWES succeeding his father Charles ( as the Romane Chronicles record ) with no lesse liberalitie , granted vnto the Romane Bishops and his successours , the Citie of Rome together with his Dukedome : and defended the iurisdiction and dignitie thereof , euen to the imputation of superstition . Notwithstanding ; neither the remembrance of the good seruices of the father , nor the vertues of the sonne , could so farre foorth wey with Gregorie the third , as to suppresse , much lesse to mitigate his diuelish intendments once conceiued against this Lewes . For the Warre being on foote betweene Lewes and his sonnes ; He ( as it behoued an Apostolicall Bishop ) sought not to quench the fire of this vnkindnesse betweene father and child , but being sent by Lewes into the Campe of his sonnes to capitulate the Peace , with condition to returne againe vnto the Emperour ; reuolting from Lewes , he remained with his sonnes , and like a true Apostata , abetted and complotted this vnnaturall dissension ; so farre foorth , that the father was taken , and being committed to most seuere imprisonment , with his yonger sonne was finally thrust into the Monasterie of Suessons . Behold here a most strange precedent of ingratitude in children against their dearest Parents , and the detestable impietie of a Bishop against a most innocent Emperour ; both equally gilty of like periurie and disloyaltie . From that time , although the Royal Diademe continued for some certaine Ages in the posteritie of Lewes , neuerthelesse their hellish humors did no more spare the issue , then in former time it compassionated the Parent . And no maruaile , for this was the onely marke that they shotte at , that hauing once shaken off the right which the Emperour pretended in the confirmation of Bishops , they might with more securitie euer after haue meanes to ouertop them in greatnesse . Which their most prouident proiect was long a hatching , neither could it bee deliuered to discouerie , before the yeere eight hundred ninetie fiue . At what time Charles the Grosse departing out of Italy to warre vpon the Normans , who at that time miserably infested the Sea coasts of France ; Hadrian the third layed hold vpon this opportunitie , and in the very beginning of his Pontificie , made his complaint vnto the Senate and people of Rome ; That in the Election of Bishops , the Imperiall authoritie was not to be stood vpon , but that the Suffrages of the Clergie and the people ought alwayes to be free . By this Decree he disseysed the Emperours of their whole right , which but lately they possessed both vpon the Bishops and the Citie ; Thereby pointing out to his successors a course how to attempt proiects of higher nature in future ages . And surely from those times , what vpon the deficiencie of the issue of Charles the Great , which had most fortunately Gouerned the Empire for the space of one hundred and odde yeeres : and what in regard of that most horrible Schisme proceeding from that Chaire of pestilence , managed betweene the Bishops themselues by mutuall Murders , Poysenings , and all other kind of enormities , their continued machinations against the Emperours some-deale ceased ; vntill they reassumed a new occasion of plotting & reiterating their former courses against Otho the first , Emperour of Germanie . ❧ Otho the Great . He was chosen Emperour in the yeere nine hundred thirtie and sixe . In England reigned Adelstan . FOr at what time , in the Reigne of Otho , Iohn the thirteenth , Noble in trueth by Birth , but most base in conuersation , Gouerned the Romish Sea , and polluted Peters Chaire with ryot , gaming , pandarisme and Women , &c. At that very same instant likewise Berengarius Duke of Lombardie , amongst many other Cities , forbore not to presse hard vpon the Citie of Rome also . The Cardinals grew discontented , aswell at the Popes Epicurisme , as at Berengarius his Tyrannie . Two of them more agrieued then the rest ( whether vpon scruple of conscience , or in remembrance of the greatnesse of the Romane name , or in hatred of the Pope ) resolued to pray in aide of Otho , a Prince of that time much celebrated for his vertues amongst the Loraners , the French , the Hungarish , the Danes , and all the other barbarous people , vnder his obedience throughout that part of the world . Whereupon , calling some others to Councell , by letters and messages they solicite Otho , that he would vouchsafe to assist the declining estate of the Church and Common-wealth : That hee would represse the Tyrannie of Berengarius cruelly raging vpon the Christian people : And that he would not let , to deliuer the Church from so fell and impure a beast . The Bishop comming to the knowledge of these passages , first cut off three of his fingers , that indited the Letters , and then slit his Chancellors nose , for giuing approbation thereunto . But Otho , who thought it not fitte to leaue the Church succourlesse in times of danger , hauing amassed all necessaries for warfare , marcheth into Italy with fiftie thousand Souldiers . Expelleth both Berengarius and his sonne Adelbert : then speedeth towards Rome . Where arriued , although the inhumane cruelties of the Bishoppe were not vnknowne to his Maiestie : Yet in reuerence of the Apostolicke Sea , at first hee decreed no hard or vnbeseeming censure against him , but causing all things that had beene iniuriously taken from him to bee restored , hee presented him moreouer with great masses of Gold , Siluer and Iewels . And appointing him a time of conference ; secretly and friendly hee repeated what he knew of his fore passed offences , wishing him therafter to abstaine from so grosse and foule enormities ; To leade a thriftie life ; to bee an ornament , and not a dishonour to the Church ; That integritie of life was no lesse commendable in a Churchman , then Artes and learning . For the present , the Pope protesteth great hopes of amendment : The Emperour reioyceth thereat , and leauing Rome iournieth towards Papia , there minding to Winter , but withall exacteth a solemne Oath from the Bishoppe taken vpon the body of Saint PETER ; THAT IN HIS ABSENCE HE SHOVLD NO WAY BE ASSISTING TO BERENGARIVS , NOR HIS SONNE . The Emperour had scarce left the Gates of Rome , but the Bishop returning to his wonted inclination , not onely followeth his pleasures , his Whoredomes , his Ryottes , his poysenings , and all other mischiefes , of like nature ; but also hauing forgotten his plighted faith to the Emperour , reuoketh Adelbert from Fraxineto , whether hee had fled out of Italy to the Saracens , and promiseth him his vtmost assistance against the Emperour : Hee dispatcheth also his Legats to make like complaint against him at Constantinople . The Emperour , vnto whome such grosse and wilfull periurie seemed more then wonderfull , vpon the first intelligence thereof , thought it not fitte rashly to listen thereunto , but dispatcheth certaine of his Seruaunts to Rome to learne the certaintie of the businesse . Vpon their returne , and iustification of these , and more vile indignities , the Emperor ( not vniustly moued to displeasure ) suddenly hasteth towards Rome : where pitching his tents hard vnder the walles ( Iohn and Adelbert being fled into Campania ) he is most honorably receiued into the City by the Inhabitants . Vnto him they promise faith and loyalty , and sweare thereafter neuer to elect a Pope without the consent of the Emperor Otho , Caesar , Augustus , and his Sonne Otho . Iohn being thus escaped ; and for feare of Caesar lurking in Campania in woods and corners ; after three daies , at the instance both of the Clergie and the people ( desiring a Commission to enquire vpon the life and conuersation of Iohn ) the Emperor agreeth , and proclaimeth a Councell ; whereunto he calleth all the Bishops and Abbots of Italie , such as he knew to bee men of integrity , honest , and zealous . Who appearing vpon the day prescribed , although his abominable life was such , that euen by the generall opinion of the Councell , it could not but be deciphered by the remotest Nations , yet this most vertuous Emperor , tooke order that they should not proceed to any rash Iudgement , but to determine all accusations with mildnesse of mind and deliberate advice . Whereupon with the Archbishops of Liguria , Tuscanie , Saxonie and France , he dispatcheth his letters vnto Iohn , reciting therein the cause and maner of his accusation : not forbearing to intreat him to make his personall appearance , to say for himselfe against his accusers . But he returning for answer ; that it should easilie appeare , what slight esteeme he made of that Councell ; And that , he would suddenly proceed to Excommunication , in case they presumed to elect Any other : the Emperor in a most solemne Oration intimateth to the Councell , his periuries towards himselfe , and his dishonest conuersation towards the whole Christian world . Vpon hearing wherof , with one consent the Councell declared this Apostata Iohn for his euill life to be worthilie depriued : And Leo chiefe Secretary of the Romane Church was chosen to succeed him . In the interim wherof , the Emperor not to be burdensome vnto the State of Rome , had dismissed many of those companies of Souldiers which at first hee had brought with him into Italie . Which comming vnto the vnderstanding of this reprobate Bishop , who full well was acquainted with the disloyall and mutable humours of the Italian Nation , sendeth his espialls to Rome , with exhortations to the people to attempt a surprize vpon the Emperor and his weake companies ; for which their good seruice he promiseth to reward them with all the Treasures of the Church and Saint Peter . The Romans being hereunto incouraged , partly by the weaknesse of Caesars army , and partly with the conceit of these Golden mountaines , arise , and at the sound of a Trumpet charge vpon the Emperor . He maketh a stand vpon the Bridge of Tiber , and there with his fearelesse and old Trained companies , valiantly receiueth the charge : The Romanes receiue the iust reward of their trechery : for being routed , and put to flight , neither sanctuary , nor vnsanctuary could warrant any one mans life ; the fury of the Souldiers slew the periurd , aswell at the Altar , as in the Shambles . When this was done , Caesar stood in good hope , that after so great a punishment , the Romanes would proue afterwards to be of more quiet and aduised dispositions , and in this conceit , he hastneth to Spoletum , the place of Adelberts rendeuou . Vpon which absence Iohn betaking him to his wits , through the mediation of certaine good-wenches , heretofore of his ancient acquaintance , so worketh with many of the Roman gentry , that Iohn is receiued into the City ; and Leo with much labour escaping their hands , flieth vnto the Emperor . The deposement of Leo , and the cruelty of Iohn , which he had already inflicted vpon some few , being known ; Caesar repaireth his Army , with intention to be revenged vpon the Romans , as well for the iniury offered to his own person , as for the wrong in deposing a Bishop of his owne institution . In midst of which intendment , by the iudgement of Almighty God , meaning to make this Iohn an exemplary president to the world of his most iust indignation , it came to passe , that he died a most strange kind of death . For when vpon a certain night without the walles of the City , hee was sporting himselfe with an other mans wife , the diuell gaue him such a knocke on the Temples , saith Luitprandus of Ticine , that within eight daies he died of the wound . Other write , that he was wounded by the womans husband ; and so gaue vp his impure soule to the diuell his master , whom he had long serued . But death gaue no surcease to the seditions first occasioned by this monster . For the Romans , in place of the deceased , set vp Benedict the fift , and afterwards required Confirmation from the Emperor , then residing at Spoletum . The Emperor disallowing the Election , disdainfully dismissed the Romans , little mistrusting any such welcome : and by fire and sword wasting all things about the City , finally compelled them , that expulsing ( or rather yeelding vp ) Benedict , they should accept of Leo : binding them by Oth , that they should not presume to alter any thing , which he had set down for the Churches gouernment . Hereupon Leo being restored to his Sea at Barionea , and over wearied with the disloyall humours of the Roman people , retransferred the whole Authority of chosing the Roman Bishops from the Clergy and people of Rome , vnto the Emperor ; as it is set downe . distinct . 6. c. in Synodo . And Otho , having in this maner marshalled his affaires , returned into Germanie , taking Benedict with him ; who not long after through griefe of mind , being committed to the safe custody of Adaldag , Othoes Chancellor , and Archbishop of Hanburg , died at Hamburg , and there lieth buried in the Cathedrall Church . ❧ Otho the third . He raigned in the yeere of Christ 984. about the dayes of Etheldred . SOme few yeeres after , as Otho succeeded his Grandfather in the Empire : so did hee likewise in the contentions of the Bishops . For when as Iohn the xvij . being dead , by the right of Election , inuested vpon him by the donation of Leo the viij , to his predecessor Otho the great , hee had chosen Gregorie the v. for Pope ; Crescentius and the people stomacking that a man of the German nation should be aduanced to be their Bishop , and him also chosen by the sole authority of the Emperor , they resolued to depose him ; and in his place they substituted , Iohn the xviij . of that name , first Bishop of Placentia , a man well stored with coyn , and a great Scholler . Gregorie maketh his repaire into Germanie to the Emperor , and there vnfolding his hard vsage , so prouoked the Emperor , that he besiegeth the City , and pressed it so closely , that the people almost hunger starued opened their Gates , and receiued his Maiesty . Being now in possession , and vnderstanding , that like power by warrant of Gods word , was bequeathed him ouer a wicked Bishop , as ouer a common theefe ; at first he gaue commandement that the eies of the captiue Bishop should be put out , the fingers of both his hands to be cut off , and then clothed in vile attire , with his stumps and feet manacled , to be set vpon an Asse , so to be conueyed through the City , and finally to be thrown headlong from the rocke Tarpeia . Crescentius the Consul hee also caused to be mounted vpon a base Beast , his face towards his taile , his nose and eares to be cut off , so to be a common spectacle to all beholders , and lastly to be hanged vpon the common Gallowes in sight of the City walles . Thus hauing wrecked his iust indignation vpon his aduersaries , he not only restored Gregorie , the xj . moneth after his deposall to his pristinate dignity : But also this good and most excellent Emperor , left an example to his successors , that these proud Churchmen were not to be managed by lenity and mildnesse , but to be curbed by roughnesse and seuerity . For it was the receiued opinion of that age , that looke which of the Caesars shewed himselfe to be of more milde disposition , then some others ; so much the more wantonlike would they dally with his lenity , and more basely prosecute him with railings , & foule-mouthed reproches ; As by that which followeth , I will clearely make manifest vnto you . ❧ Henricus Niger . Hee ruled Anno Christi . 1039. In England Harold Harefoot . THis seuerity of Otho , last before spoken off in punishing the treason of Iohn , for some certaine time so terrified the Bishops , that vntill the smart was forgotten , openly they attempted nothing against the Maiesty of the sacred Empire . But no sooner had Benedict the xj . by Satanicall and magicall Inchantmentes leaped into the place , but by how much his skil and confidence in that profession was remarqueable , by so much the more insolent was his cariage in the Popedome . For no sooner was Conradus , ( a most faithfull steward of the Law and Religion , Emperor of Romans , alwaies Augustus ) gathered to his fathers ; but this firebrand going to counsell with his minion Laurentius , and other his fauorits ; bendeth his studies , how hee might dispossesse Henrie the sonne of Conrade from his hereditary succession to the Crowne of the Empire ; and disturbe the peace of the Church with Schisme and dissension . To the effecting of which stratageme , hee sendeth the Crowne of the Romane Empire vnto Peter King of Hungarie , with this Motto vnder written . Petra dedit Romam Petro : tibi Papa Coronam . The Rocke gaue Peter Rome : to thee the Pope this Crowne . But the Emperour , vnder the leading of Godfrey Duke of Lorain , a most excellent Souldier , and faithfull seruitor , confronted Peter , tooke him Prisoner ; and further , meaning to repay Theophilact the ringleader vnto so dangerous a Schisme , according to his deserts , set forward for Rome . Vpon brute whereof , Theophilact , ( alias Benedict the ninth ) stroken in remorse of conscience , and amazed with terrour , bartered the Papacie to one of his Companions , the Archpriest of Saint Iohns de Porta latina , the Master of Hildebrand , for the Summe of one thousand and fiue hundred pounds . Who ascending the Seate by the staires of such abominable iniquitie , by changing his Name , was thenceforth stiled , Gregorie the sixt . Now is the Cup brimfull ; and the Papacie so managed , that all good men being either reiected or oppressed , euery other party , as he was caried away by ambition , or inabled for briberie , cast to lay hold-fast vpon this so high a step of Dignitie ; more entring like theeues and robbers by the windowe , then by the doore . So that in these dayes ( besides the Archpriest Iohn Gratian ) ascended also into this Seate of iniquities ; Iohn Bishop of Sauoy who ( changing his Name ) was otherwise nominated Siluester the third . Thus was the Roman Church ren tinto diuers factions : Three Popes appeared at one instant , viz. Benedict the ninth , Siluester the third , and Gregorie the sixt , and euery one claimeth lawfull succession in Peters Chaire , and pleadeth possession . Where is now the Church ? Who is this head ? Who shall now stand vp to arbitrate so difficult a controuersie ? None is now to be seene but the Emperour ; And him , without question , surnamed Niger , God himselfe stirred vp ( hauing set Germanie in good order ) with an Armie to trauaile into Italy , where calling a Councell , he inforceth Theophilact to flie : Hee imprisoned Gregorie , and afterward with Hildebrand , exiled him into Germanie . The Bishop of Sauoy he dispatched to his charge ; and in their places consecrated Syndoger Bishop of Bamberg , otherwise called Clement the second . Of whom he receiued the inauguration of the Imperiall Crowne , and then inforced the Romans to take an Oath : That thereafter they should neuer presume to meddle with the Election of a Romane Bishop , without expresse Commission first obtained from the Emperour . For his most excellent Maiestie did well foresee , that in those times the world was giuen to so much licentious libertie , that euery factious and Potent companion , though most ignoble , would not sticke to arrogate vnto himselfe that so eminent a dignitie , by corruption and vnderhand-courses , which by the strict commandement of God , was not to be bestowed vpon any liuing creature , saue him who for learning and sanctitie of life , ought worthily to bee preferred therevnto . This vsage now grew vnto so inueterate a custome , that euery sedicious and wicked varlet presumed , that hee might without scruple of conscience vsurpe vpon Saint Peters Chaire ; As did Damasus the second , by birth a Bauarian . This man hauing gotten poyson for his purpose , slue Clement , and laboured by villanie to attaine to that promotion , which whilom was accustomed to bee bestowed onely vpon vertue . But God , the most iust reuenger of such wickednesse preuented him , and the three and twentie day after his vsurped installment , sent him to accompanie the dead in the place of darkenesse . ❧ Henricus quartus . He raigned in the yeere of Christ 1056. in Germanie . In England Edward the Confessor . ALbeit , that euen hitherto , from the dayes of Charlemaine , the Romane Bishops being generally possessed with the spirit of Supremacie , by sleights and deuises , did continually oppose themselues against the Maiesty of the Empire , and left no practise vnattempted , that might weaken or discountenance the Emperors soueraignty ; that so they might dispose of all things at their pleasures without all feare of controlment : yet was it not the will of Almighty God , to suffer them as yet totally to cast off the yoke of duty , by warrant of Holy writ inuested vpon Princes and great personages placed in Authority . But what can humane wisedome plead in search of Gods purposes ? perdere quos vult Iupiter , & hos dementat : For now the malice , impiety and treason of the Roman Clergy , together with their diabolicall ambition , especially vnder that figuratiue Dragon ( Gregorie the seuenth ) grew like a violent tempest so outragious and exorbitant , that those times may truly be recorded to be the daies , which vtterly razed , blemished , and wounded the Maiesty of this famous empire with the fatall ruine of glory and Honor. For this mischieuous monster , not contented to haue poisoned six Bishops , and to haue deposed his Master Alexander , for imploring assistance from the Emperor ; Neither mindfull of the fauours which Henrie ( surnamed Niger ) had afforded him , in curteously dismissing him from perpetuall Imprisonment , seperated from the company and sight of all mortall creatures , whereinto ( as we told you before ) he had beene condemned with Gregorie the sixt : At what time , the Normans raged through Apulia , Calabria and Campania , partly relying vpon the great wealth of Matilda , a most potent woman in those daies , and partly animated to see the Empire distracted with most dangerous wars raised by the warlike Nation of the Saxons against the Emperor , scarce three yere seated in his gouernment ; together with the reuolt of the Germane Bishops whom the Impostor our perpetuall aduersary had seduced from the seruice of their Master : Then I say , this man first of all other , against the custom of his predecessors , absolutely vsurped vpon the Papacy , without all consent of the Emperor , before that time alwaies accustomed to be mediated in the Election of these Bishops . And in future ; to preuent the residue of the Bishops and Abbots from seeking their confirmations at the Emperors hands , he set forth a decree vnder pain of Excommunication ; That hee had not onlie power in heauen to bind and to loose , but also that he had plenitude of iurisdiction in Earth , to take away , and to giue Empires , Kingdomes and Principalities . Then began he impudently to boast : to vsurpe vpon the temporall and Supreme iurisdiction , and that by a law of his own coyning : to esteeme of Kings and Emperors as tenants at will : to imprison Caesars Ambassadors opposing against his insolencies , & finally leading them through Rome in ignominious manner , to expell them the city . Henrie , albeit he were infinitely perplexed with the war of Saxonie , yet knowing that this nouell and vnvsual pertinacie of the Bishop , was not to be forgotten , calleth a Councell at Wormes ; wherein , audience being giuen to the Ambassadors , which came from Rome , and Hildebrands disloyall Letters being read ; besides the Saxons , all the German and French Bishops , made a Decree ; That sithence Pope Hildebrand a fugitiue Monke first of all other incroched vpon the Papacie without the good liking or priuity of the Romane Emperor , constituted of God to be his Soueraigne Lord , and that , contrarie to the Custome of his Predecessors , contrarie to law , and contrarie to his oth of instalment : And moreouer had vsurped vpon both iurisdictions , the temporall and Ecclesiasticall , as the Decij and worshippers of false Gods were accustomed to doe : That ipso facto he was deposed from his Bishoprick ; for sheep were no longer to be intrusted to the keeping of such a woluish Shepheard . One Rowland a Clerke of Parma , was dispatched to Rome with letters containing the sentence of the Councel : In whose Name he was commanded to interdict Gregorie from all Ecclesiasticall Function ; and moreouer to enioyn the Cardinals , that making choice of another for Bishop , they should present him to the Emperor . In like maner , Caesar himselfe dateth his Letters vnto Hildebrand , to the Clergy , and the Roman people : commanding according to the Iniunction of the Councell ; That himselfe should returne to a priuate life ; and That , they forsaking Hildebrand , according to their accustomed Priuiledges should proceede to the election of a New Pastor . At the receit of this newes , Hildebrand became not so much lenified , as furiously exasperated , and insolently imboldned . For , whereas before he had Excommunicated but some certaine of the Emperors familiars , whose aduice he presumed Caesar to haue vsed in these his proceedings : now presumeth hee by nouell president to Excommunicate Caesar himselfe in a hellish conuenticle , against the order of Christian piety , ratified by the sacred Canons of Holy writ ; Him , I say he prescribeth , depriueth of all kingly Authority , dispoileth of his Kingdom , and absolueth his Subiects from their oths of obedience . Behold , he was no sooner risen from the Seat wherin he sat to Excommunicate Caesar , but the Chaire being lately made of strong and new timber , suddenly by the prouidence of God in most terrible manner was rent into a thousand shatters : manifestly foreshewing , That by that rash and vnaduised Excommunication , this cruell Scismaticke should proue the Author of a most fearefull diuision in the Church of God. And surely these were neither blind nor idle predictions . For the Princes and German Bishops , taking notice of the Curse , some vpon a vaine superstition , some in hope of bettering their estates , and others in remembrance of their ancient hatred against Henrie , at the next assembly of the States , threatning a Reuolt , vnlesse he would suppliantly desire forgiuenesse of the Pope ( now resolued to come into Germanie ) brought the controuersie vnto so narrow a pinch , and his Maiesty into such mistrusts of despaire , with the dispoiling him of his reall possession , That he was fain to promise the Princes , that hee would goe vnto the Pope , and personally craue absolution at his foot . Wherupon putting off his regall habiliments , with his wife and yong sonne barefooted , and clothed in canuasse , being made a spectacle for Angells and men to admire at , in a most bitter winter , and a most dangerous kind of trauell , commeth to Canusium where the Pope then resided : There before the gates of the City fasting and sutor-like from morning till euentide , he danceth attendance : Meane while Hildebrand within , amongst whores and shauelings laugheth him to scorne . Three daies he patiently indureth this lamentable affliction , desiring admittance . He is denied . At three daies end instancing admittance with greater importunacie , It is answered ; That his Holinesse is not yet at leysure to attend his suit . Henrie by patience making a vertue of necessity ( In that he could not be admitted into the City ) contenteth himself to abide in the Suburbs , but not without many incommodious greeuances . For the wether was sharpe , and all places appeared hoary with frost . At last , after his incessant three-daies petitioning , and deniall , at the instance of Maud the Countesse of Adelaus Earle of Sauoie , and the Abbot of Clunois , he is admitted vnto presence . Vpon the fourth day in signe of vnfained penitency , he resigned his Crowne and imperiall Ensignes , and maketh a protestation that hee were vnworthy to enioy the Title of an Emperor , if he should againe commit the like offences against the Roman Sea , as formerly he had done . For all this , this inexorable Prelat would neither pardon nor absolue him , vnlesse he would put in good securitie , that according vnto his Popish pleasure he would expiate the offence in a Councell , and be forth comming at euerie day and place appointed , ( there the Pope being Iudge ) to answer vnto all accusations without once plotting in his thoughts anie scruple of reuenge . 2. Yea after his purgation , and reconciliation , either to retain , or forsake his kingdom , if the Pope thought it so fitting 3. Thirdlie , that before the Examination of his Cause , he should not presume to weare anie Kinglie habit , neither haue borne before him anie Imperiall ensignes , That hee should not meddle in state gouernment , nor exact anie oth of allegiance vpon his vassalls . Vpon promise of performance , and future obedience , the attonement is now at length confirmed aswell by Oth as Indenture , and Henrie absolued . Now obserue I beseech you , the restlesse humours of attainted consciences . The Court of shauelings , deep polititians , men of profound reaches ; and admirable well seen in the principles of Machiuell , and carefull aswell to preuent future blowes , as to oppose against present perils , either reuoluing in their far reaching wits , or suspecting in their seared consciences , that Henrie beeing sure seated in a peaceable estate , could not possibly disgest so vilanous an indignity , nor the world allow of so base a tiranny ; fall againe to their old plots , but a new-Counsell ; viz. how they might vtterly dispossesse Henrie of his Empire . Rodulph Duke of Sweuia , Henries brother in law , is presented with a golden Crowne , thus inscribed . Petra dedit Petro , Petrus diadema Rodulpho : And withall the Bishops of Magunce and Colen are commanded , that ( rebelling against Henrie ) they shold set it vpon Rodulphs head , and assist him therin to the vtmost of their forces . Was it for Loue , or Honor may the world dispute , that the Pope became thus bountifull of an other mans patrimony , to bestow it vpon Rodulph ? Or doth any History make mention that Rodulph was a more kinde Son to the Church , then Henrie ? Beleeue me , the Pope did neither vpon any such respects , it was far from his imagination . But this was the windlace of all : if Henrie must liue in peace , Henrie must seek reuenge : but if the Duke of Sweuia find him play on one side , Romandiola shall be secured on the other side . Let Rodulph or Henrie sinke or swim , meane while res nostrae tutiores redduntur , that is , the Court of Rome may securely swagger ; If Henrie haue the better , yet shall he be much the weaker : if Henrie haue the worse , then all the care is taken , for Rodulph is infinitly beholding vnto vs. And be it as be may : nether party ( being potent Princes ) shall haue cause to laugh at their bargain ; let time try the sequell ; and so it hapned . O the blind folly of ambition . For albeit that Rodulph was the Emperors sworne liege-man , his brother in law by mariage , indowed with the Dukedom of Sweuia after his decease , and honored with many other fauours : notwithstanding being seduced by the faire and false protestations of the Bishops , and borne out by his own greatnesse and the succours of Saxonie , he inuadeth the Empire , and rebelliously to his vtmost power moueth war against his Soueraigne master . Caesar by the admonishment of the Bishop of Argentine , seeing the danger arising from all parts , leuieth his people , affronteth Rodolph , and setteth all vpon the hazard of a battell . The issue whereof was this , That the Pope vpon mistrust of the worst , commanded both parties to Peace , and that Henrie should expect his sentence at the Synode , which shortly hee would proclaime to be held in Germanie . Which limitation , when Henrie stomacked , vpon protestation that hee would suffer no Assembly to bee holden in Germanie , vnlesse Rodolph were first remooued : The Pope ( rather then hee would disharten Rodolph by finall Peace ) renueth the Excommunication , and sendeth foorth his Mandates full stuffed with hellish furie . Henrie is nothing abashed , but the third time giueth the battell at Elistrum of Misia , and there ouerthroweth his enemy . This came to passe in the yeere 1080. the Ides of October . Rodolph being grieuously wounded , and from the field conueied to Merseburg , intreateth the Bishops and the Leaders of his people to compeere before him . Where being assembled , Rodolph feeling death seazing vpon him , stretched forth his right hand and said : My Lords , this is the hand with which I plighted my faith to my Lord Henrie . At your intreaties , thus , and thus many times hath it vnfortunately fought against him : Returne yee , and make good your first Othes to the King : I am to depart to my fathers . Rodolph being vanquished , and Germanie by his death resonably well quieted , Henrie neither forgetting Hildebrands iniuries ; neither hauing his spirits so peaceably affected , but that hee could call to remembrance , how the Pope had twise Excommunicated him ; how for three dayes space being a most suppliant Petitioner in a very cold season , he could attaine no reconciliation ; As also , that cunningly hee had assisted his enemie , euen the competitor of his Kingdome , proclaimeth a Synod of the Bishops of Italy , Lombardy , and Germanie , to bee celebrated at Brixia a Citie of Norica . Where being assembled , and the Acts of Hildebrand examined , with one consent they promulge this suffrage . For that it is apparently knowne , that Hildebrand was not Elected of God , but most impudently by fraud and briberie , made his owne way to the Papall dignitie : And therein being seated , hath subuerted all the Orders of the Church , disquieted the whole Christian world ; intended the death both of body and soule , to a most peaceable and Catholicke King ; defended a periurd Prince , and amongst the peaceable , sowed seedes of discord , &c. Wee here Congregated by the Grace of God , and assisted by the Legats and letters of nineteene Bishops , assembled against the foresaid Hildebrand at Mognuce the eight day of Pentecost , doe canonically giue iudgement against the said Hildebrand , That he is to bee deposed and expelled , for vnaduisedly Preaching of Sacriledges and factions , defending Periuries and Scandals ; Abclieuer of Dreames and diuinations , a notorious Necromancer ; a man possessed with an vncleane spirit ; And therefore an Apostata from the true faith : And vnlesse vpon the receite of this our iudgement , hee shall voluntarily resigne the Seate , we doe finally Accurse him . These businesses being thus dispatched , and Germanie quieted , in the yeer 1081. the Emperour iournyeth to Rome , and pitching his Campe before the Castle of Saint Peter , hee chargeth the Romanes with so many assaults , that they are glad to pray for Peace , and to open their Gates . The Bishop with his followers retireth into the Bastile of Adrian : wherein being besieged , he worketh the Emperour more disquiet by craft and subtiltie , then the Emperour could doe him , by Mine or Engine . For as Henrie accustomed frequently to make his Orisons in Saint Maries in Mount Auentine , this Traitour suborned a certaine villaine , secretly to conuey vpon the Rafters of the Church , great and massiue stones ; and so to dispose them , that as the Emperour should kneele at his Prayers , from aloft they should fall vpon his head , and dash out his braines . As this villanous Regicide , the Minister of Popish iniquitie , was hastning his dissiegne , and labouring to fit this massie stone to the execution of his Treason , the stone fell down and drew this villaine downe withall : So that bruising the Table whereon it fell , supported with strong Tressels , it rested on the Pauement , and there by the iudgement of God , dashed in pieces the carkise of this Trayterous workman . The Romanes vpon notice of the Treason , fastning a corde to one of his legges , for three dayes space dragged him along through the streetes of the Citie . This failing , had the Pope so shallow a pate , as to carie about him but one string to his bow ? Or was he so honest a man , that rather then hee would spare the blood of Christian people , hee would giue ouer his owne life , nay his Seate , for the saftie of many thousands ? Obserue what followeth : To be sure , that neither Germanie should long breath in peace , now Rodolph was gone ; nor the Emperour bee secured in Italy ; he turneth to the Art of diuersion ( a point of Warre well knowne amongst Souldiers ) and stirreth vp the Saxons in his absence to create Harman Prince of Lucelburg in Lorain , Emperour at Isleb . by Hercinia : Who likewise by the prouidence of GOD at the siege of a certaine Castle , was miserably slaine by the fall of a stone cast from the battailement of the Wall by the hand of a siely woman . Hee being gone , ( the Romish Religion will still be dealing , rather then loose one iot of their reputes , if they cannot otherwise preuaile ) this inhumane Tyrant thirdly stirred vp Ecbert Marques of Saxonie : and him also God predestinated to suffer condigne punishment for his Rebellion . For the fift yeere after , he was beset in a Mill neere Brunswicke by the Emperours Guard , and thete miserably slaine . Once againe , Hildebrand flieth to his wits , and perceiuing , that his stake in Germanie was cleane lost ; Himselfe immured in a Bastill , where he could not alwayes continue , and that he had small reason to fall into the sight of Caesar , hee dissembleth a parley , and during the conference Iudaslike forsaking his companie , in disguised habit flieth vnto Salerne amongst the Normans . Caesar forthwith assembled a Senate of his Nobles and Bishops , according to the custome of his predecessors , giueth order for an Ecclesiasticall Diet : Where Hildebrand , as a thiefe and a robber ; a perfidious fugitiue , a forsaker of the fold ; a Traytor to the flocke , a debalker of Christian charitie , by the vniuersall consent of the Conuocation , is denounced and condemned . In his place is promoted Guibert Archbishop of Rauenna , a louer of Peace and Concord ; a man learned and religious : By the consent of the Cleargie hee is Consecrated Bishop by the name of Clement the third , in the yeere of Christ 1084. This done , he Rein-stalleth Caesar and his spouse Bertha , and saluteth them Augusti , with the vniuersall applause of the people . As for Hildebrand , either through griefe , or guiltinesse of conscience , he died in exile ( as the saying is ) Ab aris & focis in the Towne of Salerne . But this firebrand of Warre and discord being extinguished , the furie of the Prelates amongst themselues was neuer the neere allayed ; howbeit , thereby , the world enioyed peace ; and Germanie her pristinate Maiestie . For Vrban ( after Victor the second , a Bishop but of a fewe dayes standing ) intruded vpon the Papacie at Gurstung by the faction of Hildebrand , but especially by the money of Matilda , and the Armes of the Normans . Him the Emperour with the greater part of his Nobilitie accused of Irreligion , and denounced him in the number of the wicked . This fellow , notwithstanding that he had long wandered sine lare , sine grege , yet he so artificially finished the webbe begun by Hildebrand , that instead of Vrbanus , the world stiled him Turbanus , yea , hee went far beyond his Schoolemaster Hildebrand in wit and villanie . For , being not able any way to wrong Henrie by secret inuasion ( Papists will doe nothing openly , or at least without pretext ) he commandeth the Canons of that most pestilent knaue Hildebrand , to be confirmed and holden in force against him . Then draweth he into Parricide Cunrade the sonne of Henry , begotten on his first wife , by his fathers appointment Viceroy of Italy . Vpon him he bestowed Matilda the wife of Roger the Norman , and by him expulseth Clement the third , Installed by the good liking and consent of his father . But Vrban and Cunrade being both quickly dispatched , Paschal the second loth to come behind his predecessors in Treacherie , and taking it for good Policie , to giue Caesar no breathing time to prouide against tempests , by the example of Vrban , in a Synode at Rome reuiueth and ratifieth the Curse of Gregorie against the Emperour . Buls are but words , and words are no weapons for Popes . Whereupon a quicker corasiue must bee applied : The other Sonne of Henrie ( named also Henrie ) the Princes of Aquisgrane must salute as Caesar , notwithstanding that already he had giuen his father his Oth of Loyaltie and true Leigeman . O Lord ! where shall not a man finde a man for blood , if promotion , or money , or Mariage be offered for recompence ; but especially , if the man of blood may resort vnto a Churchman , and receiue absolution for so cruell and vnpardonable mischiefes ? Of such persons , and such stratagems , behold in those dayes the Popes made their especiall vses : they may be as bold in these times and in these points to pleade vniuersalitie and antiquitie as they did and doe for their Masse , and the residue of their trumperie . For yong Henrie is vp in parricidiall Rebellion : Papa impellit , saith the Historie : and being borne out by the Armes of the Saxons , so caried the Warre , that this most valorous Emperour , and stout reuenger of the impeached Maiestie of the Empire , being harried with continuall conflicts , and weary of his life through the perpetuall burden of Popish vexations , as he trauailed towards the Dyet of Mogunce , by treason vpon the high way , and that against a publique oth of safe conduct , was taken by his Sonne Henrie : then being degraded most vnwillingly of all imperiall ensignes , as also of his Crowne by the Bishops of Mogunce , Colen and Wormes ; hee was committed to prison in the towne of Leyge : where pining to death through griefe , he finished his troublesome daies in this most lamentable maner . Notwithstanding such was the irreconcilable rancor of these charity-preaching fathers , that they not contented with these their most cruell turmoiles practised against his life ; Hyena-like , with as barbarous bestiality they also preyed vpon his liuelesse carkasse . For the body being already buried in the monastery of Leyge , they inforced the Bishop of the place to dig it vp againe , and without either honor to so great a personage , or reuerence to holy sepulture , they commanded it to bee cast amongst other carcases into a prophane place . The reason was grounded vpon one of their owne Canons : Quibus viris ecclesia non communicat , illis etiam nec mortuis communicare possit . Repentance etiam in nouissima hora , and the reward of him that came into the vineyard at the cloze of the day , equalized to his , that began to worke in the dawning , is of no force with them . It is scripture ; and scripture , you know , is not sufficient for saluation . I quake in writing . Councels may controll It ; the Church , The Councels ; and who is the Church ? the Pope ; For otherwise it were folly to broche so many positions , as it doth , against law , conscience and sound diuinity , if it lay not in their fulnesse of power to doe and vndoe , say and vnsay . To conclude , at last , the body is conueyed in a coffin of stone from Leyge to Spire , and there also for fiue yeeres space , it remained without the duties of Christian buriall . ❧ Henrie the fift . NOw let vs see , if Henrie the fift , seduced by the witchcraft of the false Pope , to vsurpe vpon the Empire of his father , experimented any other allowance of loue and fidelity from the Bishops , then did his ancestor . Comming vnto Rome to be crowned with the imperiall Dyadem , he thought it much to concerne his honor , to demand restitution of his right in the confirmation of Bishops , Abbots and Prelates . The Pope forgetfull of all former fauours , doth stoutly deny the motion . From request they fall to blowes , insomuch that the Pope with certaine of his seruants was taken prisoner , and conueied to Mount Soracte , now called Mount Siluester . Paschal seeing no remedy , sent vnto the City for Notaries , and at length confirmeth and reuiueth to the vse of the Empire , the auncient prerogatiues claymed by the EMPEROVRS in the Creation and Inuestiture of Popes and Bishops : and in requitall is honoured againe by the Emperour , with many rich presents . But such was the iust iudgement of God towards this Henrie ; that as he obserued not faith towards his father , no more did others keep towards him . For euen those men who for his sake had forsaken his father , rise now in rebellion against the Son. For presently vpon his returne in the yeere 1116. into Germanie , the Pope congregateth a full Councell of his owne creatures , and there bewailing his sinne , which he had committed in surrendring his priuileges ; after long and solemne debating of the case , vndoeth all he had done before ; confirmeth the Decrees of Gregorie the seuenth ; and vpon the custome lately taken vp , Excommunicateth Henrie . Hereupon many the Princes of Germanie , and especially the Bishop of Mogunce fall into rebellion . Caesar sendeth vnto the Pope , to treat a peace , but by his death that businesse was determined . After his decease the Cardinalls create Gelasius Pope , neither calling Caesar to Councell , nor once acquainting him with their determinations . Whereat Caesar being agreeued , flyeth to Rome , & consecrateth Mauritius Archbishop of Brachar for Pope . Gelasius being deposed , and Maurice confirmed , they both conspire with ioynt consent to curse the Emperor in his retrait from Rome , dispersing their Ministers through Germanie after the precedents of their predecessors to incite the Subiects of the Emperor to rebellion . Henrie fearing the sequell , hastneth into Germany . Gelasius being dead , Calixtus the second being his successor , warreth vpon the Antipope , whom as wee told you the Emperour had consecrated . Henrie perceiuing the Pope , vnderborne by the Armes of the Normans , to bee too strong for him , and that he began to meate the same measure towards him , as his predecessors had towards his father : In the yeere 1122. by the speciall mediation of the Apostolicke Legat Lampert , afterward Pope , and called Honorius , he became so deuote a Conuert to Papacie , that hee resigned his whole right of Inuestiture concerning the Ring and the Staffe ; granted a free Election and Consecration to be thenceforth vsed in all Churches ; and couenanted to restore , or at least , to cause to be restored all Regalities , formerly renounced , or at least as many as remained in his dispose . The Pope againe couenanted , that the Election of Bishops and Abbots should be done in the Emperors presence , without violence : so farre foorth that the Elect should receiue his Regalities , by the Scepter from the Emperour . This Concord bore date at Wormes , Nono Cal. Octob. Anno Dom. M.C.XXII . But , albeit this Henrie vtterly discouraged with the Thunder-bolts of curses , gaue way to all Popish vsurpations , and to the euerlasting staine and impouerishment of the Germane Empire , thrust his necke vnder the yoke of the Romish tyrannie , yet , in regard of new tumults and rebellions practised in Belgia and the higher Germanie , he could not liue out the remainder of his daies in affected peace . For appeazement wherof , as he trauelled towards Vtrick , he fell sicke , and died without issue . This accident , and not iniustly , men argued , to haue proceeded from the iudgement of God , for that contrary to his commandement , he had behaued himselfe so vngraciously towards a father , that had so well deserued of him his sonne . ❧ Lotharius Saxo. Hee raigned in the yeere 1125. about the fiue and twentie yeere of Henry the first . HENRIE being gone , and Germanie still reeking in blood and ciuill war : The greatest care that the Bishops tooke , was to prouide , that the people should not reunite their forces , and take time to breath from these inhumane and vnnaturall murders . Whereupon after the death of Henrie , when as Cunrade Duke of Sweuia , Henrie the fift sisters sonne , laied claime to the Empire ; against him by the cunning of Albert Archbishop of Mogunce , they set vp Lotharius Duke of Saxonie , the man in truth whose infidelity they had vsed in the miscarriage of Henrie the fifth . Cunrade is now in march , and hauing ouertopped mount Septim . is honorably receiued of the Millanois and crowned by the Archbishop Anselme at Modoecia , the chiefe Sea of the Kingdome of Italie . Honorius , in fauour of Lotharius , and in despight of the House of Henrie ( which he thirsted vtterly to extinguish ) deposeth Anselme , and by the terror of his Curses inforceth Cunrade to post out of Italie : Who finally in despaire of the Germane aide by reason of their factions and dissensions , vtterly giueth ouer his further hopes of inioying the Empire , and by the mediation of S. Bernard of Clareual , falleth to make his peace with his corriuall Lotharius . Lotharius being now sole and absolute Lord of the Empire , according to his Saxonish simplicity , honouring the Papall Sea with more then common obseruancie , ceaseth not to deserue well thereof by all the offices of loue and duty , which an obedient sonne to the Church could possibly imagine to performe . Innocentius the second , the successor of Honorius , expulsed by Anacletus Antipope and Roger Duke of Apulia , flying vnto him for succour , to his infinit charge he restored to his Sea at Barionea . But beleeue me , neither these kind offices , nor any worldly respects , were of ability either to frustrate or to mollifie the Popish auarice : for when the Pope had declared Lotharius Emperor , he made shew as if he would againe seeke restitution of the auncient rites , which the Empire claimed in the election of Bishops and Abbots : But the rauenous Pope not only refused to vnloosen his talents vpon what he had already seised , but also re-attaching whatsoeuer Lotharius himself either by the perswasion of Bernard , or in feare of further sedition , had voluntarily offered to the Romish sea , he laboured by all other meanes to adde more to the former , through his immesurable avarice . For when Lotharius hauing expulsed Roger the Apulean ; would haue bestowed the Dutchy vpon Earle Reignold the generall of his armie ; the Bishop impleded him , as concerning the right of donation , with so vehement a contention , that neither being minded to yeeld to other , the controuersie at last was faine to be thus determined : viz. That both parties should lay their hands vpon the Staffe of the Feodarie ensigne , then to be deliuered to the new Duke of Apulia : Thereby signifying that both of them had equall interest in the transportation of that Dukedome . So that , the more humility accompanied with sweet behauiour and moderation , that this all-praise-worthy Emperor shewed towards the Papacie : The more the waywardnesse and malice of the Romanists began to shew it selfe , and that without feare or modesty . For whereas this Emperor in receiuing the Diademe had cast himselfe at the Popes feete , the Clergie , to vse the precedent to the debasement of succeeding Emperors ; and to deliuer it as a trophee to posterity , as soon as his backe was turned , set vp in the Lateran pallace his protraiture , with this inscription . Rex venit ante fores , iurans prius vrbis honores : Post homo fit Papae , sumit quo dante Coronam . The King attends before the gates : and sweares the City-rites to keepe : From Romes great Pastor takes his Crowne , and vowes to hold in vassalage . What was this , but a bewraying first of their frowardnesse , manifested in despising the Maiesty of so high a calling ; and secondly of their pride , in that forsooth , they would seem either to ouertop , or obscure , the victorious gests of him , who to his immortall commendation had subiected vnder tribute , the Duke of Polonia , the Pomeranes and the Russies : who I say , to the no small honor of the Maiesty Imperiall ; had inforced the King of Denmarke to beare the sword at his Coronation ; had subiugated the states of Cremona , and Papia , and brought the vanquished Bononians and Piemontois into the forme of a prouince : and finally with the conquest of Apulia , had brought vnder obedience many most noble Cities in that Dutchy . Now is he vanquished , and acknowledged the Popes bondslaue . For what other signification doth the Popes ( Creature ) import , but to be his vassall or seruant ? Such are these admirable seruants of seruants , whom euen Emperors themselues are glad to acknowledge and respect as Lords and Masters . ❧ Conradus tertius . He raigned in the yeere of Christ 1138. about the third yeere of King Steuen . LOtharius , in his second retrait out of Italie , being departed this world not farre from Trent , Conrade the same Prince ( whom as before we told you ) the malice of Honorius had frustrated of the Empire , and banished Italie , now succeedeth his dead predecessor . But , albeit ( after the decease of Lotharius ) the Princes of the Empire , and that in the presence of Theodoret the Popes legate , and with his very good liking , did elect him King of Romans , yet by no meanes could the Popes assent be gotten to perfect the Election . For whereas hee had conferred to Roger Duke of Apulia , that Dukedome , with the titulary dignity of a Kingdome , in liew of ransome for himselfe , and his Cardinalls taken in battell ; and Conrade in preiudice of the Empire would neither ratifie , nor hearken vnto so vnreasonable a motion : Nocentius complotting with Roger , incited Guelfo Duke of Bauaria , to rebell against Conrade , for that hee could not obtaine at his hands the graunte of his brothers Dutchie : Herewith , the Emperour had so much to doe to defend his owne , that hee quite forgot to thinke vpon the recouery of Sicil and Apulia . Behold here a president of Papall fidelity , if his auarice bee not supplied by losse to the State. About this time these fatall factions of the Guelfes and Gibellines ( whereof others haue discoursed ) began in Germanie . For as Nauclerus reporteth out of Hermanus , whilst the battell was fighting betweene Conrade and Guelfo , those of the Kings party tooke for their word or Motto , Hie Wiebling , which is as much to say , The King : as being nobly discended from a village of that appellation : Those which followed Guelfo , reclaimed , Hie welf . Where after it came to passe , that those two denomidations of Guelfes and Gibellines , became the originall of all the factions in Italy . Which falling out happely for Gregorie the ninth to make vse of , from thenceforth , he gaue them such large entertainment , that no City , towne nor people were cleere from the infection of so spreading a contagion . For vpon no other ground , saue the vse of these names , euen vntill our daies with more then admirable fury , City bandied against City , Prouince against Prouince , yea & in a City one part of the people confronted another . Not only the factious people continued this dissension amongst themselues : but the Bishops also in this quarrell prosecuted one another to the vtmost of their furie . Amongst others , that Boniface the eight , then whom the Romane Sea neuer indured a more fell monster , persecuted from place to place all those whome hee knew to bee of the Gibelline faction , ransacking and spoiling all places whereunto they made any repaire of abiding . Whereupon some finding no safety in Cities , setled their abodes in woods and forrests : manie of the Gentrie , like wilde beastes inhabited the Sea coastes , and at last left Italie to bee companions with pirates . For they assured themselues , that the Pirates could not haue vsed them worse , then this Malefacius Nero would haue done , if he had once caught them in his clutches . As for example : When hee heard that certaine of the contrarye faction were fledde to GENOA , hee posted after them , with full determination by destroying them all , to haue razed their verie name from the memorie of mankinde through the whole world . Heere likewise it happened vpon Ashwednesdaie , as hee was casting Ashes according to Custome amongst the people : the Archbishop of the City kneeling vpon his Maribones with his head vncouered to receiue the Ashes ; the Pope by chaunce vnderstanding that hee was a Gibelline ; where his Holinesse should haue saide , Remember Man that thou art but Ashes , and into Ashes thou shalt returne againe : Not so ( quoth the Pope ) Remember Man that thou art a Gibelline , and with the Gibellines thou must bee turned to dust : and therewithall in a most furious manner , without once regarding the holinesse of the place , the presence of the people , or the regard of Religion , of set purpose ( missing his head ) he cast great quantities thereof into his eyes : Afterward he depriued him , and then againe restored him . At last by Gods iudgement it came to passe , that those Gentlemen , who ( as we told you ) left Italy with the Pirats , returned againe , and gathering together some companies of such as here & there lay lurking in feare of Maleface , breaking open the gates of the place where he lay , mistrusting no such aduerse aduenture , they tooke him , and brought him prisoner to Rome : where in the space of fiue and thirtie dayes , what for griefe and greatnesse of stomacke , he breathed out his loathsome soule , ouer-laden with innumerable mischiefes . ❧ Fredericke Barbarossa . He raigned Anno Christ . 1152. about the seuenteenth yeare of King Steuen . FRederick , for his redde Beard , commonly termed Barbarossa , the sonne of Frederick Duke of Sweuia , the brother of Conrade , a Prince of excellent partes both for body and minde , succeeded this Conrade , a Prince also no whit inferiour to his successor for his honourable carriage in peace and warre . To speake little of his Nobility , it is recorded , that the intire right of the most noble Families of the German Common-wealth , viz. of the Henries of Gweiblingen and Gwelforum of Altorff , descended vpon him . Howsoeuer ; by the consent of all writers , hee was reputed to bee of an excellent capacitie , prouident in Councell , of a good memorie , eloquent , constant and valiant , a good Souldier , and well practised in Armes ; To the humble , courteous ; To the peaceable , milde . Amongst honest men , vertuous ; Amongst proude persons , imcompatible . Very bountifull , and in science of many humane ornaments , not immatcheable to any . In regard of which his manifold vertues , by the suffrage of the whole Nobilitie , he is declared Emperour , not without assured expectation , that through his worthinesse , Peace should be maintained through Germanie , the disgraced forces of the Empire restored , and Italy now growne insolent through continuall rebellion , brought into order and requisite acknowledgment . The Romish contentions with the Germane Emperours , by vile and nouell prescription , seemed now so possessionated , that the Bishops , by whose suffrage the Emperours were to be confirmed , began to make small or no account of the Imperiall Maiestie , which the preposterous ambition , and immatcheable pride of the Romanists , the Germane Princes ( and who can blame them ) taking to heart , could hardly disgest : but by how much this noble Heros in the greatnesse of his mind , meditated to abate the insufferable pride of this pernicious rable : by so much the more found hee all things to oppose against him with more and more disaduantage , to the impeachment of all his proiects . Which his noble exploits albeit they are not vnknowne to all men ; neither is it any part of my minde , nor the proiect of this pamphlet to set them downe punctually ( for so they would require an Ilias ) yet by patience I will glance briefly at some of them , which in my iudgement shall sufficiently informe you , what was the obseruancie , and what the fidelity of the Bishops of these times , towards the sacred maiestie of this most worthy Emperour . Obserue therefore , that the third yeare after his election , this Frederic hauing set Germanie in order , and especially through infinite paines taking procured a firme peace betweene Henry the younger , and Henry , Dukes of Saxonie and Austrich , with a populous armie marcheth into Lombardy , now by the long absence of the Emperours , growne confident in ability of resistance , by proiecting many infallible signes of insolencie and rebellion . By the way , he destroyeth the camp of the Millanois , Rosatum , Gailarda , Treca and Gaira , and setteth the citie of Ast on fire : Derthona most strongly fortified by art and nature , hee taketh by force : and from thence remouing his troops through Romania and Tuscanie , hee passeth as farre as Sutrium . In these times the Romane sea stood incumbred with most dangerous contentions . William King of Sicil , who succeeded Roger ( the same that we spake of in the life of Conrade ) had taken from Hadrian the fourth , by birth an English man , the suburbs of Beneuent , Ceperanùm and Bacùm in Campania . Moreouer , the Romanes by the instigation of Arnold of Brixia , redemanding their lost liberties in chusing their senate for the gouernment of their Citie , maintained the contention so farre forth against Hadrian , that as , after his election , hee made his progresse towards the Lateran to be consecrated , the people meeting the Cardinal of Saint Pudentiana in the via sancta taking his way towards the Court , twice wounded him . At this outrage Pope Hadrian grew out of all patience , accurseth the King , releaseth his subiects of their oath of allegiance , & the easier to draw them into rebellion , leaueth them at libertie . The Romans sped no better , vntill vpon alteration of their humours , they banished Arnold out of the Citie , and renouncing their Consular prerogatiues , diuested the absolute gouernment of the place vpon the discretion of his Holinesse . Who now hearing that Frederic was vpon his way towards Rome , the Pope with his Cardinals , neither for loue nor in honour , but to mediate reuenge against the Romans and Roger , goe forth to salute him . Frederic reioysing at the approach of his Holinesse , receaueth him with wonderfull deuotion and maiestie ; holdeth his left stirrope as hee alighteth from horse-back , & so conducteth him to the Imperial pauilion . Could more reuerence be deuised to be done by an Emperor to a Pope ? when Christ came to Ierusalem vpon Palme Sonday , did Herod or Pilat so obserue him ? or did Nere so salute Peter at his first comming to Rome ? Well , these so great personages being arriued at the emperiall pauilion ; The Bishop of Bamberg in the name of the Emperor in the exordiū of his oration , began to discourse , with what earnestnes of affection his Maiestie had desired this long expected conference with his Holinesse . And God be blessed ( quoth he ) that he now is become master of his desires . Humbly and submissiuely he requesteth your Holinesse , that according to the accustomed maner , by the Inauguration of the Imperiall diadem , you would declare him chiefe Prince and defender of the Catholique Common-weale . And herewithall the Bishop concludeth honestly , and elegantly , with the reasons and causes , which could not but inable him most worthy of so reasonable , so iust , and so Christian-like a confirmation . The Bishop hauing ended his Oration , the Pope commendeth the speach ; but withall replieth ; That the contents thereof , and the matter in hand were of farre different arguments . For albeit ( quoth hee ) that the matter whereof I meane to speake of , be triuial & passable ; yet can it not be denied , but that there is cause of feare , that hee , who becommeth negligent in small matters , will proue more negligent in greater . At this , the company rowsing their attentions , and wondring what offence his Holinesse should intimate ; he goeth on ; saying , As I alighted from my horse , he held the left stirrope of my Saddle : and whether he did it in mockage of vs , or vpon some other like fantasie , wee can not guesse , for surely if he meant to haue honoured vs , he knew that the right stirrope , and that with the right hand , ought to haue beene holden . Caesar being nothing moued with this base prattle of the Bishop , smiled and replied ; That he had not been brought vp to hold a stirrope : you ( most Holy father , quoth he ) are the first vnto whom we haue vouchsafed this office : And by and by after his orisons , forgetting his patience ; I would know ( saith he ) whether this office be to be done of dutie , or of good-will . If of good-will , who would finde fault at an escape or ouersight ? If of dutie , then wee thinke amongst friends there is small difference , on which side the partie that meaneth to honour his friend , approacheth . Thus bandying a few bitter words , they brake company , but not without stomaking . But the Emperour being a most prudent Prince , dissembling what he had heard , and seene to proceede from the hellish heart of this proud prelate , the next day following re-inuiteth the Bishop to a second conference . The Bishop approcheth , the Emperour maketh speed to meet him ; and by his former ouersight , being now become a better Prentize in his occupation , layeth hold on the right stirrope , and so leadeth his Holinesse into his pauilion . Being set , thus Hadrian thundereth : Thine auncestors ( saith he ) Princes of the auncient world , who made their holy repaire vnto this sea to receiue the crown at our hands , were accustomed to manifest their loues towards vs , by some notable emolument bestowed vpon S. Peters chaire ; thinking it their duties to preuent vs , that so they might call the world to witnesse , that they obtained our benediction and their inauguration with an eminent gratuitie . So Charles , after he had tamed the Lombards : So Otho , after he had subdued the Beringary ; And so Lotharius , after he had repressed the Normanes , merited the Imperiall diadem . In like manner , Let your Serenity , restore vnto vs and the Church , Apulia an appendancie of the Romish sea , now arrogated by the Normanes , and then shall you , with our very good will , obtaine as much as appertaineth vnto our loues to performe . Vpon the reading of this Historie , can any man call this Prelat servum seruorum , who ashamed not to exact from so great an Emperour , his Lord and Master , as from a base and mercinarie souldier , the laborious toiles , and the extreame expence of warfare gratis ? Are conquests of Kingdomes , surrendring of Prouinces , and such like passages ( let any man tell me ) those spiritualia , whereof our moderne Papists doe hold the Pope capable ? When the Nobility saw no remedie , but Hadrians hand was as hard as Pharaos heart , so that it were folly to expect a Coronation , vntil at their proper costs and charges they had restored to the Apostaticall sea , Apulia ( in truth an appendancie of the Imperiall right ) from William King of Sicil ; they thought it fittest to content his holinesse with this ouerture ; That sithence their present forces were wasted through continuall labour and indefatigable iourneyes , that Caesar hauing leuied a new armie in Germanie , would returne , and accomplish his expectation . The Bishop flaming what with indignation against William , & almost halfe dead to heare , that against his will hee must volens nolens giue him time of breathing and re-inforcement , shewing a countenance as if he liked well of their excuses , allowed thereof , and so dismissed them with promise that hee would set the crowne vpon Fredericks head . These businesses thus dispatched ; the Emperour with the Bishop departeth from Sutrium , and iournieth towards Rome . Mid way certaine Romane Orators , as full swolne with pride , as their Master with disdaine , accourt him with this rude welcom : For their theame they begin to extoll , euen aboue the skies , the antiquitie of their Commonwealth : At conclusion they fall in glorious termes to intimate , That of mere good will the Roman people had called Frederick out of Germany ouer the Alps , first to create him a citizen , and afterwards a Prince of Rome : but with this per-closse ; That the Romans stood ready to receiue him ; vpon condition ; That hee should confirme the fundamental lawes of the City : That hee should bestow vpon the Romans who were to bid God saue him , in the Capitol , fiue thousand pound of gold : That he shold defend the commonwealth from iniuries , euen to the hazard of his own life : And finally , that he should confirme all these capitulations with an oth , and thereto set his hand . Fredericke beeing beyond meane inraged at these their mad and arrogant motions , roundly taketh them vp for their follies in a most pithy oration : and telleth them , That the Empire descended vpon him , not by any the least well-wish of the Romanes , but by the meer vertue of the Germanes . And perceiuing their knauery , that vnder pretext of these demands , they meant to gull him of mony ; he told them in plaine termes : That he came not into Italie , to bring it in , but to carrie it out . With which answer when these impudent shauelings were not satisfied , but still vrged the Articles , his Maiesty disgracefully commanded them to depart . And perceiuing that their comming vnto him was but to put som trick vpō him , he caused his men of war to fortifie the Church of S. Peter and the bastile of Leo. The day following he entred Rome , the people following him with great applause and being honorably accompanied , was crowned and blessed . 4. Calend. Iulij . in the fourth yere of his raigne . The Emperor being about his Coronation in the Church of S. Peter , the Romanes stomacking the businesse , and betaking them to their armes , kept the gates of the City shut , vnder colour , that the Emperour should bring in no forces to the preiudice of the Citie . And perceiuing that Fredericks troopes had pitched their tents in the Neronean medowes , through the gate of Hadrian they breake out into the Vatican , to preuent Caesars souldiers from entring thereinto . Caesars souldiers made strong resistance , and driuing the inraged people from the Vatican into the City , they slew about one thousand , and tooke sixty prisoners : whom , the ceremonies being ended , at request of the Pope , the Emperor dismissed in safety , and prouided for his returne into Germanie . But before his departure , it is reported , that such a like businesse happened betweene him and the Pope , which I thinke not fit here to be pretermitted . Innocent the second , he whom a little before Lotharius had restored vnto the Papacie , had caused to be painted in a Table , the Pope ( as it were ) sitting in his chaire , and the Emperor with his hands held vp together , receiuing the Imperiall Diadem : where vnder were written the foresaid two verses , Rex venit ante fores &c. When this picture with the inscription , was shewed vnto his Maiesty , it did greatly displease him , and casting foorth some obiurgatorie word , he instanced the Pope to take it away : which hee promised to doe , least so friuolous a spectacle might giue matter of discontent to many worthy personages then residing in the City . Frederick is departed : and Emanuel Emperour of Constantinople vnderstanding with what desire of reuenge the Popes stomack burned against William King of Apulia , by Palcologus his Orator and Embassador , he offereth vnto the Pope his voluntary seruice ; and withall , to expulse William out of Italie ; vpon condition , If the businesse tooke expected issue , that then , according to the treaty ; the Grecian should inioy three maritime cities in Apulia . Doubt not , I beseech you , but that he who had already depriued William of Apulia , for contemning such religious wares , as are Popish Bulls and Curses , did not straine much curtesie to accept of the Articles . Whereof William taking notice , and withall somewhat fearefull , by his Embassadours moueth his holinesse to hearken vnto peace ; promising not only to restore vnto the Church , whatsoeuer he had taken away , but also that he would adde somewhat of his owne thereto : Moreouer , that hee would thencefoorth containe the Romans , rebells to the Church , in their due obedience . These were honourable conditions , but that the Pope should not accept therof , the Cardinalls disswaded him , like true men of armes , hoping to reape more crownes by war , then by peace . Whereupon , warre is proclaimed against William . Hee leuieth an army throughout Sicily , landeth in Apulia , wasteth the country by sword and fire , and finally routeth Emanuel , who had pitched his Tents not far from Brundusium vnto Beneuent , where at that time the Pope with his Cardinalls resided , he gaue such sharpe assaults , that in despaire of their liues , he inforced them to sue for peace . William accordeth , and is receiued into fauour , and proclaimed king of both kingdoms , on this side and beyond Pharum ; but vpon oath , that from thenceforth hee would neuer againe infest the territories of the Church . Thus , as you heare , matters being ignominiously compounded , the Pope riding in visitation through the territories of the Cassinates , Marsi , Reatini , Narnienses and Tudertini , at last ariueth at Ouieta ; and there is giuen to vnderstand , that Rome is in combustion , the Consuls doing their vtmost to restore the City to it former liberty . Hereupon groundeth He his deadly hatred against Frederick , most greeuously complaining , that being in distresse between the swords of the Romans and William , that contrary vnto his superabundant promises , against all right , he had forsaken him ; yea , that he was now so incircled with perils , that he could not liue in security at Rome : As if the Emperor were a vessell especially chosen rather to patronize the Popes wilfull errors and ouersights , then to defend the innocency of the Christian flock committed vnto his tutelage . But Fredericke taking in euill part many the Popes actions , but especially the alienation of Apulia , being an appendancy of the imperiall dignity , without his consent or knowledge : As also calling to remembrance , That the Pope had wrested from the late Emperors the right of Inuestiture of Prelates : That by his ministers hee had impouerished the subiects of the Empire , and by their subtill dispersions of treasonable practises , had done what in them lay , to raise sedition throughout the Empire : Vpon these grounds , I say , the Emperours Maiesty now thought it high time to put remedy vnto these violent intrusions vpon the regalties of the Empire . Hereupon hee exacteth an oth of fidelity of all the Bishops of Germany ; The Popes Legats ( such as were not called in by his good pleasure ) he commandeth to depart the Teutonick kingdom : prohihiteth his people either to appeale or trauaile to the Romish Court and in his mandats causeth his name to be inserted before the Popes . Vpon the proclaiming of this Inhibition , it happened , that a certaine Bishop in his way from Rome , ( whether as a contemner of the Emperors edict , or vpon any other cause , I know not ) was taken prisoner , and committed to ward . Now hath the Pope found an occasion by the taking of this Bishop , to fulminate his long-conceiued displeasure against the Emperor , and by a proud Embassie , seemeth only to be agreeued , that the Bishop is not deliuered from Captiuity ; but withall interlaceth , both in his letters , as also in the speeches of his legat , many blundering Items ; which did abundantly insinuate in what manner he deemed the Emperor to be obliged vnto him . For by his letters he wisht him to re-consider , how from him he had receiued the confirmation of the Imperiall crowne ; and yet did his Holinesse nothing repent it , had the fauours which he had bestowed vpon him , been far more beneficiall . Vpon the reading of which letters , the nobility falling into discontent ; one of the Legats rose vp , and resolutely tooke vpon him to broach : That the Romane Empire was transferred from the Grecians to the Almans , not to be called Emperor , but King of the Teutonicks , vntil he were confirmed by the Apostolique sea : Before consecration he was a King , after an Emperor : Whence then hath hee his Empire , if not of the Pope ? By the election of the nobility he hath the name of a king , by consecration of the Pope , the stile of an Emperor , and Caesar Augustus , Ergo per Papam imperat . Search Antiquity : Zachary inobled Charles and gaue him the sirname of Great , that he mought be Emperor : and ordained that euer after the Teutonic King should bee Emperor , and Champion of the Apostolique Sea : That Apulia , by him should be pacified , and restored to the Church , being in truth holden of S. Peter , and not of the Empire . Rome is the seat of the Pope , Aquis in Arden is the Emperors : Whatsoeuer the Emperor possesseth , he holdeth it whollie of the Pope . As Zachary transferred the Empire from the Greeks to the Teutonics : So may the Pope retransfer it from the Almans to the Grecians . Behold , it is in his power to giue it to whom he pleaseth , beeing onlie constituted of God ouer Kingdoms and people ; to destroie , to pull downe , to build and to plant . In conclusion , he termeth the Germans cowards , for that they could neither expulse Roger out of Italy , nor would at anie time bring the Danes and Frislanders to subiection . Vpon the hearing of these scandalous exorbitations , both the Emperor conceiued a iust displeasure , and the whole nobility so stormed thereat , that Otto of Wittelspach drawing the sword , which he accustomed to beare before the Emperor , had shethed it in the body of the Legat , had not the Emperor thrust betweene them . Of these abuses the Emperor or euer after made vse , pretending that the cause of his so and so doing , took originall from these saucy and malepert speeches of the Popish ministers . And thereupon causing the Legats to be safe conducted to their lodging , at break of day hee commaunded them to be packing ; with especiall caution , that they should not rome hether and thether vpon the liuings of the Bishops & Abbots : but that they should keepe the high way towards the Citie , without declining therefrom either to the right hand or the left . The especiall reason was , that according vnto the accustomed dog-trick of the Romanists , they should not disperse their conceiued poyson of discontent ouer all the Churches and Parishes of the Kingdome ; neither strip the Altars , nor carie away the vtensils of Gods house , nor fliece the crosses . And because that no man should imagine , that this intimation was inflicted aboue desert , nor any commotion should thereupon arise , Caesar by the councell of the wise men of his Kingdome , sendeth his letters through the whole Empire , shewing the tenour of the cause . And thereunto adioyneth his most passionate complaints vpon the diminution of the honor of the Empire : with a declaration , That by the election of the Princes , vnder God onely , the Empire had deuolued to him and his successours . Against which , if any man presumed to affirme that the Emperour ought to hold of the Pope in fee , he was to suffer punishment , as a person guilty of an vntruth , & one that maintained an opinion contrarie to the diuine institution , & the doctrine of Saint Peter . The Legats ariue at Rome , where in most calumnious manner aggrauating their wrongs and iniuries , in the presence of Hadrian , by adding flame to fire , they so incense his holinesse already transported with furie and reuenge , but to thinke that Frederick had done , what his auncestors durst not haue dreamed of ( for of which of the Romane Emperours is it read of , that euer interdicted the Romanists Germanie . ) That forthwith hee addresseth his minitory letters vnto Caesar : wherein most bitterly and papally hee expostulateth with his Maiestie of these and all fore-passed greeuances . The transcript whereof because they are worth the reading and animaduersion , for the benefit of the Reader I will here insert . Adrian Bishop , seruant vnto the seruants of God , sendeth greeting and apostolicall benediction vnto Frederick Emperour of Romanes . As the Diuine Law assureth long life vnto those , that render due obedience vnto their parents : So , vnto him that disobeyeth his father or mother , it inflicteth the sentence of death , and damnation . The voice of veritie doth teach vs , that euery soule that exalteth it selfe , shall be humbled . Whereupon ( beloued sonne in the Lord ) according vnto your wisedome , we are not a little amazed , that you shew not that measure of reuerence towards Saint Peter , and the Romane Church , as you are bound to doe . In your letters dated to our Holinesse , you insert your stile before Ours . Wherein , you incurre the scandall of presumption , I will not say , of Arrogancie . As concerning your fealtie auowed and sworne to Saint Peter and vs , how is it kept , when you require Homage , exact fealty , and hold the holy hands of those betweene yours , who are duly dedicated to God , being his most glorious children , viz. the Bishops , shewing your selfe manifestly rebellious vnto vs , in denying our Cardinals ( directed vnto you from our side ) not onelie entrance into the Churches , but also into the Cities of your Kingdome ? Repent , repent therefore wee aduise you , least that in seeking to deserue a Crowne and coronation , at our hands , in affecting things vngranted , you lose not what is alreadie granted . We tender your noblenesse . What inference of humility or apostolicall lenitie appeareth ( I beseech you ) in these letters ? nay , rather may not a good Christian without offence terme such a pride to be truly Luciferian , that taketh so great a scorne to haue the papall stile placed behinde the Imperiall , as if other Emperours in their letters to His Holinesse , had not before times done the like ? See 97. dist . c. victor . & 63. distinct . c. tibi . After the receite of these blunt and proud-papall mandats , the Emperour according to his excellent sufficiencie in Christian sapience , requiteth him ; and as the prouerb is , driuing out one naile with another , he payeth his holinesse home in this manner . Frederick by the grace of God Emperour of Romanes alwaies Augustus , vnto Adrian Bishop of the Catholique congregation . Whatsoeuer Iesus began to doe and to teach , in all things ought wee that to follow . The Law of Iustice distributeth vnto euerie man his owne . Wee derogate not from our parents , as long as in this Kingdome we vouchsafe them due Honour , from whom , viz. our progenitours , wee haue receaued the dignitie and Crowne of the Kingdome . I pray you in the time of Cōstantine was Siluester known to haue anie interest in the Regalties ? By his Pietie , the Church obtained libertie and peace : and what euer iura regalia your Papacie can claime , they accrewed vnto you by the bountie of Princes . Turne ouer the Cronicles , and if you please not to belieue what I write , there shall you finde as much as we affirme . What should then let vs , that we should not exact homage and oathes of allegeance from them , which are Gods by adoption , yet hold of vs in regaltie : sithence that He , who was ours and your Master ( taking nothing from the King , but distributing all his goods indifferentlie amongst all persons ; paying tribute to Caesar for himselfe and Peter , and leauing the example behinde him for you to follow ) hath warranted the president , by saying ; Learne you of me , for I am meeke and humble of heart . Wherefore , let them either resigne their regalties , viz. their temporalities ; or in the name of God , if they shall iudge them profitable , let them giue vnto God the things that are Gods , and vnto Caesar , what belongeth to Caesar . The reason wherefore we interdicted your Cardinals , the Churches , and forbad them our Cities , was because we finde them not Preachers , but robbers : not peace-makers but money masters : not conuerters of the people , but heapers of insatiable treasure . Yet , when we shall finde them , such as the Church ordaineth them ; messengers of peace , lights to their Countrie , and impartiall assistants to the cause of the Humble , then will we not deferre to relieue them with competent stipends , and necessarie prouisions : meane time you wrong humilitie , the Princesse of vertues , and mightilie scandalize your submissiuenesse , by terrifying the consciences of secular persons , with positions wholy impertinent to religion . Let your fatherhood therefore take heede , lest while you motion points of such nature ( whereof we make light account ) that you offend not those , who would otherwise euen in hast open their eares as willingly vnto the words of your mouth , as vnto a presage of a ioyfull accident . These things we can not but aunswere , sithence so detestable a beast of pride hath crept into S. Peters Chaire . Fare you well alwaies , and God at all times make you carefull for the peace of the Church . What humane spirit can scandalize these the Emperors letters ? What scruple of equity , of piety , or vprightnesse can any man say is wanting in them ? Who can iustifie , that hee wrote otherwise then became a true and a Christian Emperor ? He but retorted the Bishops pride ; he maintained but the honor of the Empire ; he sought but reason , and that was , Christian humility and modesty in Christian Churchmen ; which in those times , as the world then complained , was not to be found in that sort of people . What followed ? Peace I warrant you : nothing lesse . For the Pope not contented that by letters hee had bandied with the Emperor , but writing vnto all the Archbishops and Bishops of Germany , he punctually noteth downe the cariage of the cause , and aggreuateth the indignity of the fact : Admonishing them , that sithence the action concerned the whole body of the Church ( for they will make vs beleeue that without their intrusions all Christendom must perish ) that they should corroborate themselues , as a wall of brasse to sustaine the declining estate of the house of God. And that they should not only find meanes to reduce the Emperor into the right way , but also take open and condigne satisfaction vpon Rainold the Emperors Chancelor , and Otto Earle of Wittelspach , who forsooth had belched out infinit blasphemies against the Apostolike Legats and the Church of Rome : That as the inciuilitie of their speech had offended the eares of manie , so their penances might be an example to restore as manie againe into the right path of obedience . But for that ( as certaine of the writers of that age doe testifie ) the then Bishops were not so eagerly addicted to maintaine the Popes vsurpations , as many of them are now , they conuocated a Councell , and thus wrote backe vnto his fatherhood : That they were not onlie wonderfullie agreeued at these abuses ; but also Arnold of Mogunce and Euerard of Saltzburge by their priuate letters admonished all Roman Priests , Cardinals , Archbishops , Bishops and Massemungers , to giue ouer their saucinesse , their pride , their auarice , their perfidie , and all other enormities , by which they robbed the poore , and disturbed the peace of the Empire . Finallie they humblie besought them , that they would put their helping hands to worke Adrian to obserue peace : vndertaking for the Emperor that he should do nothing , but what stood with religion , reason and equitie . Sure these were bitter pills for Hadrians stomach : But what remedy ? Popes , as they are cursefull , so are they politique , and beeing well skild in speculation , they know by the Planets , when it is high time to hold a candle before the Diuell . He that now reigneth is not Henrie the fourth , but Frederick the first : who is now preparing for Italie ; and hauing sent his honorable Embassadors , Rainold his Chauncellor and Otto of Wittelsbach , before to assemble a conuocation of the Princes and Bishops of Italy , prepareth his way in potent and Princelike manner , and meaneth himselfe in short time to sit in person in Councell amongst them . Now is it time to fly vnto the fox his case ; a necromantique spell hath informed vs , that the Lions skin will nothing preuaile vs : Humble letters are dispatched towards Augusta to lenifie the Emperours displeasure ; and Henrie Duke of Saxonie and Bauaria with Otho the Frison ; made intercessors to reconciliation . No long time after , Hadrian betakes himselfe againe to his perspectiue , where obseruing that the Cities of Italy ( Crema being hardly besieged by Frederick ) had interprised a conspiracie to re-uindicate their liberty , the Pope hauing vtterly forgotten his yesterdaies reconciliation , traiterously adhereth to the faction and animateth the conspiracie vpon these conditions . First That neither partie should accept of peace without the good leaue of the other . Secondly , That if the Bishop chanced to die , that none but one of the same faction , shoald be created in his stead . And then to giue the better countenance to the rebellion , for an infinit Masse of mony hee is corrupted to accurse his Maiesty . So saith mine Author ; but in these daies , I am of opinion , that malice is as powerfull in a Papists breast as corruption in the Papall Court. But our best and great God , who by the mouth of his seruant Dauid , seemeth punctually to cry out against these hired Excommunications of Popes : They curse , and thou blessest : Let those that rise against me be confounded , but thy seruant shall reioice : This good God , I say , inuerted this execrable maledict vpon the Popes own head , and miraculously confounded the man , to the terror of all posterity . For being at Anagnia , the place where hee had excommunicated Fredericke , it chanced that as he walked abroad amongst his familiars to take the aire , as hee was drinking at a certaine fountaine , a flye flying into his throat , stucke so fast therein , that no physicall experiment could giue him ease ; and so he died miserably choked . Would it not amase any humane flesh , to see so huge a gyant in the middest of his armed and rebellious battalions , but euen now scorning the Emperor and all his forces , presently to lye dead with the stroke of a flie ? Or is there any Priest amongst them so irreligious , that dare but imagine , that this stroke proceeded from casualty , and not from the finger of God , considering that that throat which had but now belched out so iniust an execration against a most godlie and innocent Emperor , was also appointed the instrument to confound his spirits ? Yea this vnshamed rabble , being nothing terrified with so miraculous a president , could by no meanes be diuerted from their intended conspiracy . For perceiuing that they could not haue their wills vpon his Maiesty by force , beeing strōg in soldiery , Lord of Italy , & in diuers ouerthrows putting the Millanois to the worse ; they made their recourse to villany , and by treason laid wait for his life . To the execution whereof , by great rewards they cunningly corrupt a fellow of a strong body vnder the habit of a foole or iester to goe vnto Landa , the place where the Emperor then resided , and there vpon oportunity to offer him violence . The traitor wholly animated by their large promises , resolueth vpon the villany , goeth to Landa ; entreth the Campe , and by iests and fooleries maketh his accesse euer into the Emperors pauilion : His Tent at that time was pitched vpon the very banke of the riuer Abdua , so steep and sliding , that if any thing fell thereinto , the swift course of the streame would forth with carry it away with violence . Which the foole-villaine obseruing to be a fit proiect for his intended treason , assaulteth the Emperor ( according to his custome going alone vnto his prayers by day dawning ) and by struggling and tugging laboureth to carry him to the foresaid steep place . The Emperor plaieth the man , so that both parties being intangled with the tackling of the tents , fell to ground ; by which time the Gentlemen of the chamber being awaked , by the calling of the Emperour , runne to succour , and taking the villaine , they threw him headlong into the same place of the riuer . This stratagem being f●ustrated , they fall to a second , but will be seene in neither . They suborne eight creatures of their owne with plenty of crownes , to set Landa on fire . One of them mistaking the night , and laying his traines , was taken by the watch , with an other of his companions a counterfeit Monke , and both hanged . Being also deceiued in the execution of this Gunpowder plot , they fall to a third ; and send forth a certaine Mountebank , resolute to death , accompanied with some such fellowes as himselfe , to set to sale in the Emperours Campe poysoned rings , bridels and spurres , so deadly inuenomed , that if the Emperour had touched any of them , he had surely perished . But his Maiestie being fore-warned , causeth this Marchant to be watched and apprehended : Commandeth him to be examined , but finding that he scorned both questions and torments , without more a-doe hee sendeth him to the gallowes . Hadrian ( as we told you ) being choakt with a Fly , the Cardinals begin to wrangle about the choise of a successor . For two and twentie , being the Emperours aduersaries , would haue chosen Roland of Siena , one of those Cardinals ; whom a little before Hadrian had sent Legat vnto Frederick , and Frederick had banished Germanie : But nine others adhearing to the Emperor , by the suffrages of the Prefect of the Citie , and the people , created Octauianus a Romane borne , Priest and Cardinall of Saint Clements , and stiled him Victor . But these rash elections being likely to foster infinite dissensions , It was agreed betweene the Electors of both parties ; that neither of the Elected should be confirmed , before it was agreed vpon at all hands who should be the Man , and the contention quite silenced . But the Rolanders being the maior partie , falsifying their oathes , proclaimed the election of Roland , and new christned him Alexander the third . From hence arose a mighty Schisme . Victor remaineth at Rome , Alexander flieth vnto William King of Sicil , and there the twelfth day after his election , is confirmed Pope . And to preuent , that this dissension should not draw with it the finall destruction of the Church of Rome , by his legats , hee intreateth the Emperour Frederick , that by interposition of his authority , he would vouchsafe to put end to the Schisme . The doubtfull issue of a new Schisme much troubled Frederick ; wherefore , finding that both the Elettos , being orderly consecrated , he could not lawfully determine the strife , without the authority of a Councell ; after the examples of Constantine , Theodosius , Iustinian and other Emperors : ( knowing that the summoning thereof appertained vnto him ) he nominateth the day of the Assembly to be held at Papia ; and thether he warneth both the Bishops to appeare , promising also to be there in person to take cognizance of eithers greeuances . After proclamation whereof , Alexander goeth to Anagnia , whereat the Emperour being angrie for his contempt , despatcheth his letters vnto him by Daniel and Herman , Bishops of Prage and Verdim , citing him by the name of Bishop , and not of Pope , to appeare at the Councell . Alexander reiecteth Caesars Ambassadors most contumeliously , and in very arrogant termes telleth them plainly , That the Romane Bishop was to bee iudged by no mortall creature . They doing no good vpon Alexander , retire towards Octauianus , him they salute as Pope , and accompany to Papia . There the Councell being assembled , and the cause vpon sufficient witnesse through all circumstances iudicially examined , Victor is declared Pope , and so acknowledged by all the German Bishops by the commandement of Caesar . At which pretended iniury Alexander being mooued , he accurseth Fredericke and Victor : and forthwith dateth his letters of iustification vnto all Christians Kings and Potentates ; That what He did , was done with equitie and good reason . But at his returne into the City , finding many new vpstart aduersaries , openly opposing against him , he went to Tarracine : And there going on shipbord , purposely there layde for him by William of Sicil , hee retyred into France : where by the good leaue of Philip , assembling a Conuenticle in Claremount , in all hast he proclaimeth his curse against the Emperor and the Antipope . His Maiesty , albeit he foresaw the mischiefes likely to arise vpon this dissension ; notwithstanding he continueth his siege against Millan , vntill enforced by famin and wants , the inhabitants voluntarily surrendred the City at discretion , This dispatched , he sent his Ambassadors to the French King , to desire that he would call a Councel at Didion : Whether if hee would bring his Pope , then would his Maiesty also promise to bee there , and with him , to bring his Pope also . What answer these Ambassadours receiued , it is not truely known : but so much is recorded to memory , that the Earle of Blois gaue the Emperor his faith , that the King his master would not faile to be there . Whereupon , at the prefixed day the Emperor with Victor kept promise , and pitched his tents neere Didion : Thither came also Henrie the second , and William kings of England and Scotland . But Alexander could not only not be perswaded to come ; vnder pretence , that the assembly was congregated by the Emperor , and not by him : but he also so wrought with Philip , that he came vnto the place indeed , but before the Emperor ; where washing his hands in the riuer hard by , forthwith by the voice of an Herauld he summoned his Maiesty ( as if herein he had satisfied his oath ) and so departed . Wherewith the Emperor , the Kings , & the other Princes being much agreeued , wished Victor to returne to his Popedome , and they retired euery man to his own home . Victor ariued at Lucca in Hetruria , fell sicke , and died : in whose place succeeded Guido Bishop of Cremona , called Paschal the third . And vnto him at Goslaria the Emperor , and all the Princes and Bishops of Germany did their reuerence . Alexander who was yet in France , to keep Rome in obedience , constituted Iohn the Cardinall his Vicar generall , and regranted liberty to the Romanes to chuse their owne Consuls ; prouided that they were such as were fauorites of his faction . Then departeth he from France into Sicil , foorthwith returneth to Rome , and is willingly receiued of the Romanes , and Guido reiected . Whereupon the cities of Italie , incouraged by the comming of Alexander to hope after liberty , contrary to their oathes sworne before vnto the Emperor , they reedified Millan , but lately razed and subuerted by Caesar . Then at the instigation of Alexander , they enter into actuall rebellion ; they inuade the Emperors ministers and fauorits , some of whom they expell , and some they murder . Then vsing his further councell and assistance , they proceed to the building of a new City , called Alexandria , in honor of Alexander and contempt of Frederick , culling out of euery City , fifteen thousand men for inhabitation ; vnto whome they deuide the territory , and assigne portions whereupon to build their dwellings . Vpon intelligence of these rebellious combinations , Caesar leuieth an armie , and prepareth for Italie : where inforcing certaine of the rebels to composition , he besiegeth Alexandria ; but this siege proued nothing honourable : for Alexandria being continually relieued from the interessed cities , defended it selfe valiantly . And more then that , Henry Leo Duke of Bauaria and Saxonie , corrupted with money contrarie to all imagination of the Emperour , neither regarding the bond of kindred , nor the memorie of fore-passed kindnesses , most traiterously departed with his forces : so that Frederick finding himselfe too weake to withstand the Italian rebels , dispersed his hoast , and with great difficultie in the habit of an Hostler fled into Burgundy by the way of Mount Iupiter . But Leo escaped not scot-free : for the Emperour hauing now recouered Germanie , and re-inforcing his armie , limiteth the Duke a day ; appeacheth him of treason ; and ouerthrowing his forces , depriueth him of his Lordships & Dukedome . Some Princes fauouring Henrie , gaue out , that the Emperor could not condemne him , vnlesse the sentence had beene giuen within his owne dominions . Which Frederick , who before times had shewen himselfe a seuere censurer in inflicting exemplary punishment against rebells and outlawes , little esteemed ; but bestowed the Dutchy of Noricum vpon Otto of Wittelspach , that of Saxony vpon Bernard Anhaldin , and the residue , vpon other of his seruants . Who being re-enforced by the assistance of their friends within the space of one moneth , expulsed Leo almost out of all his liuelyhoods ; which of any subiect of the Empire , were the greatest and goodliest ; insomuch that nothing was left him , saue only the Dutchy of Brunswicke : An excellent president for gentlemen to looke vnto , and to learne ; that the authority of soueraignty lawfully warranted by Gods owne mouth , is not rashly to bee vilified , but to be reuerenced with fidelity , obedience , and honor , and that for conscience sake . And because I make no question , but that the review of this example , may be a motiue to bring many a rash spirit into the due consideration of authority , I will bee bold here to relate certaine other exemplary punishments inflicted by this Emperor vpon others of his rebellious subiects . Herman Earle Palatin of the Rhene , and his complices , for that in his Italian absence , hee had violated the publique peace , by raising armes against Arnold Archbishop of Mogunce , he compelled publiquely for satisfaction to lead a dog vpon the birth day of the Lord of Wormes . Gualfag Earle of Angleria , and Prince of Millan , for that after the promulgation of the Curse by the Pope he sided with Alexander , and in his quarrell committed many insolencies in the City , to the derogation of the honor of the Empire ; hauing taken him , three daies he tied him as a dog vnder his table ; whipt him with scurges , and at last in chaines sent him into Germany . These were the punishments of those daies ; the like whereof if transgressors in like cases should vndergoe in these times , there were no doubt , but to find greater tranquility , and better obedience to the lawes through out the Empire . But to our pupose . Frederick hauing thus abated the greatnesse of Henrie , leuied a new army in Germany , and again marcheth towards Italie . Variable I know , is the opinion of writers about the gests done in Italie in this iourney . Some report that he fought in such great danger against the Millanois , that his horse being slayn , himself had almost miscaried : and that vpon the compulsatory threats of the Bishops , he was fain to treat a peace with the Church . Others write , that by the perswasiō of the Bishop of Brixia , he went into the Holy-land , and that there , after the atchiuement of many famous victories , hee was betraied by Alexander to the Soldan , yet at length again restored to liberty by the Popes liberality . Albeit I know that these reports are heaued at by many : notwithstāding sithence they are vouched with the authority of such authors , whose diligence in reporting the life of so worthy an Emperour , may deseruedly bee tollerated : I am onely disposed to relate them as I finde them , especially , beeing such as in likelihood held correspondencie , with the papall disposition against Emperours , not altogether impertinent to our Argument : for beliefe , I leaue it to euery mans iudgement . Then thus at large . Frederick being arriued at Brixia , Hartmannus Bishop of the place , and the Emperours Secretarie , by the secret instructions of the Pope , dealeth with his Maiestie rather to turne these armes against Turks and Indels , then against the most Holy father and the Christian people . The Holie land ( quoth hee ) which your Grandfather Conrade to his infinite expence recouered from the Turks , is now reconquered by the Egyptian Soldan . I beseech your Maiestie euen in the name and behalfe of the publique welfare , that vnto the glorious recouerie of these Kingdomes , you would diuert your whole cogitations . This if you please to entertaine , you may assure your selfe , that the French King will noblie assist you to expell this Sacracen . This honest-seeming oration ( saith the Historie ) the Emperour well liked , and transporteth into Turkie this armie , first leuied against the Pope , and the Italian rebels . Taking his iourney by Hungarie , he commeth to Constantinople , transporteth his army , and taketh many cities from the Soldan . He inuadeth the lesser Armenia , and comming to Ierusalem , hee winneth the Citie , and casteth out the Pagans . But whilst the world goeth thus prosperously forward in the East , Pope Alexander , that most wicked Traytour , imagining it would not be so with him and his complices , if his Maiestie should returne so powrefull into Italy , resolueth to seeke his destruction by villany . He causeth an excellent Painter to draw the protraiture of Frederick , and sendeth it to the Soldan , with this Item ; That if he desired to liue in peace , There was the Emperours counterfait ; make meanes to destroy him . The Soldan hauing receaued the Breue , and the Picture , meditateth how he might gratifie the Bishop , pleasure himselfe , and be reuenged on his enemie . Opportunity in the Camp , or in conflict is seldome , or neuer offered . But as Caesar led back his troupes securely from the conquest of Ierusalem , he deuideth them into Companies , for the better commodiousnesse in their retreat to prouide them of necessaries . In Armenia , what by the heat of the sunne , & the tediousnes of the iourney ( imagining that no danger could proceed frō those solitary woods ) with a few horsmen , & his Chaplin he departeth from the Army . Being a little remoued , and the horsemen commanded to depart , he prepareth to put off his garments , to wash himself in the riuer , to asswage the heat of his body . There with his Chaplin he is taken , and throgh the woods brought prisoner to the Soldan . The horsmen in vain expect the returne of their Master , yet diligently scourd vp and down the country , both that and next day to heare what newes . The report goeth that he is drowned . Great is the griefe of the Camp , & for a moneths space they drag for him in the riuer . But not finding him , they chose new Captaines & depart . The Emperor being brought before the Soldan , faineth that he is his Chamberlaine . The Soldan by the protracture knoweth him to be the Emperour , and commandeth the picture to be shewed , and the Popes letters to be read . Whereat his Maiestie being astonished , and perceiuing that there was no further time of denial , cōfesseth the truth , & asketh honorable vsage . The Soldan after many discourses with his Maiestie , incloseth him & his Chaplin in prison , and according to his calling , entreateth him accordingly . At three moneths end , they inter-parly againe : when the Soldan perceiuing by conference , that Fredericke was an vpright man , in whom no vertue requisite in so great a personage was wanting ; admiring his wisdom , his cariage his faith and integrity ; hee fell into imagination with himselfe , that it would be much for his honor and glory to set at liberty so great & so magnificent a Monarch . Whereupon he sendeth for the Emperour , and proposeth his conditionall liberty , viz. That hee should giue him hostages , and pay for his ransome three hundred thousand sicles . The Emperor answereth , that he is able to do neither ; first , that he had no man there to be his pledge , and secondly , that his treasure being exhausted by this long war , he could not pay so excessiue a masse of mony . The Soldan , well knowing that he spake nothing but truth , deliuered him on condition ; That hee should euer during his life keepe firme peace : pay one hundreth thousand duckets , and leaue his Chaplin behinde him vntil the mony were paid . The couenants are drawn : the Emperor prepareth for his iourney : willeth his Chaplin to be of good courage : and promiseth him neuer to giue ouer , vntill the mony were procured , & himself safe returned into Germany . The Soldan bountifully honoreth the Emperour ; prouideth for his iourney , and conducteth him to Brixia by the seruice of 34. horse , and certaine companies of foot . The Princes vnderstanding of the Emperors returne , in frequent assemblies congratulate his safety . Caesar requiteth his conuoy with an honorable larges , and adioyeth some troupes vnto them to safe conduct them to the frontiers of the Empire . Then proclaimeth he a Diet at Norimberg , and before all the Princes of the Empire he vnfoldeth the treason of Alexander ; readeth the letter ; and declareth in what maner hee was taken , and vpon what conditions deliuered . The Nobility promise to assist him , so that hee should keepe his day of payment with the Soldan ; and in anger advow , that they will neuer forsake him , vntill they see him reuenged on the Traytour Alexander . An Armie is inrolled in Italie , no man repining ; and Rome approached . Thether hee sendeth his Embassadors , and requireth of the Romanes ( concealing yet a while his priuate wrongs ) that vpon hearing of either Bishops cause , they would restore concorde to the Church , by determining the right of the Papacie to one of the Elected . If thus they would doe , he promised to giue them peace , as also to restore , what in right they could challenge . The Pope perceauing , that by these good courses , the Emperour was become Lord of his desires ; by night he flieth to Caietta , afterward to Beneuent , and lastly , in the habite of his Cooke to Venice . Where , after he had lien hid certaine moneths in a Monasterie , he is at length made knowne , and in Senatorial habite by the commandement of Duke Sebastian , honorably receiued , and in his Pontificalibus accompanied to the temple of Saint Mark. Frederick being giuē to vnderstand of this reception , stormeth at the Venetians for receiuing their common aduersarie . He desireth them to send vnto him , the destroyer of the Cōmon wealth . The Venetians deny . Frederick sendeth his Son with an Armada to demand the man ; but with prohibition at any hand to fight , before himselfe was come in person . Otho a Prince yong , frolicke and aduenturous , desirous of honour and glory , copeth with his enemies , is taken and made prisoner . Vpon whose captiuity , Alexander mounted vpon the wings of this prosperous successe , vtterly denieth to treat with Caesar , vnlesse he would suppliantly come to Venice , and there accept the already written conditions of peace . Wherewith Caesar being mooued not vpon any base conceit , or despaire of victory , but partly through his affectionate loue towards his child , but more for desire to settle a firme peace in Europe , assented , and impawned his Honor to come vpon the day prescribed . Where according to promise , appearing , and proceeding to capittulation , Alexander sent him word , That he would not absolue him from the censure of Excommunication vntill he come into the Temple of S. Marke . Here is He now ariued , accoutred in humble and religious habiliment : The Pope , before a multitude of people , most papally commandeth him to lie agroofe on his belly , and suppliantly to aske forgiuenesse . The Emperor , German-like , simply suspecting , that a Bishop , who ought to haue been the mirour of modesty , would haue abused him with no grosse or dishonourable behauior , obeieth the Pope word , and so groueleth at his feet . At the sight whereof : He not only insulteth , but that worse is ; most tyrannically he treadeth vpon his prostrated neck , and then blasphemously yelleth foorth this misapplied place of Scripture . Thou shalt tread vpon the Aspe and the Bosiliskc , and thou shalt bruse downe the Lyon and the Dragon . Did euer History record of so sauage a demeanor ? Surely some barbarous souldiers , who in battell haue taken Princes prisoners , haue intreated them more inhumanely , then stood with their estates : Sapores the Persian vsed to set his foot vpon the neck of Valerianus the captiuated Emperor , as he mounted his Horse : The Tartarian Tamerlan ( the correlatiue tyranny to this of the Popes ) inclosing Baiazeth Emperour of Turkes in an yron Cage , carried him so dishonoured through all his iournies . But what is this to a Pope ? By how much the disproportion holdeth betwixt a souldier and a Churchman , betweene a Christian and an Ethnique , by so much is the immatuity of the Pope the more damnable . They being Barbarians , might plead some probability of excuse , in that they misused but their enemies , and those by the law of Nations captiuated for seruility : But the Pope is a Christian , seruus seruorum , a peace-maker , and a Priest ; whose office is only to pray and to preach : Wherefore I can not blame Bellarmine , if he could make vs beleeue ; that this History may be doubted of , when I shall relate vnto you in the word of truth ; That this mirror of Christian Humility ) Cyclopica immanitate , first , with a Gyantlike rudenesse saith mine Author ) most ignominiously with his bestiall feet presumed to touch ( nay to tread ) vpon the sacred necke of a mighty Emperour , then ( as I said ) in peaceable maner lying agroofe , and humbly desiring absolution of an vniust Excommunication . But why do I against the Precepts of history , thus lash out , by aggreuating of so barbarous a cruelty , to mooue the mind of my Reader to compassion , sithence I can neuer do it , for that the president in it selfe goeth far beyond any delineation that humane wit can possibly polish it withall ? Vox faucibus haeret , &c. Well , Caesar knowing himselfe , and recalling his generous spirits ; to shew that he was not a little moued at the indignity , openly calleth vnto the Pope ; saying , Non tibi , sed Petro : meaning that he became so deuout a suppliant , not to this Tyrant , but his Apostolique Calling . But the tyrannicall Pope , once againe bowing downe his reuerend necke with his beare-like pawes ; reclaimeth , Et Mihi & Petro. The good Emperor , that had neuer offended any man , no nor the Pope himselfe , but his pride ; albeit he could not but agrieue at this iniurious and base vsage , yet in regard of the common quiet ( much preferred before his own dignity ) held his peace : And after his absolution , thus renued his grace with the Bishop . ❧ Henricus VI. He raigned in the yeere 1191. about the second yeere of Richard the first . THe Romanists thinking it no safe policy , too much at one instant to irritate the reuengefull spirits of secular Princes , smothered a while their domineering humours , vntill the dayes of Celestine the third . Who although he had bestowed vpon Henrie for wife , Constance the Nun , the daughter of Roger the fourth King of Sicil , taken forth from the Monastery of Panormo , vpon condition , that Tancred the base Son of Roger now deposed , ( whome Clement the third had before to no purpose labored also to displant ) should hold both kingdoms in fee of the Church : Notwithstanding some there are , who write , that because this Henry punished somewhat seuerely not only the Apulian and Sicilian Laickes , for entring into actuall rebellion against him , but also proceeded with like rigor against the Clerks and Bishops , being guilty of the same conspiracy ; from some pulling their skins ouer their eares , from other their eies ; impaling some vpon stakes , and incircling some of their heads with a flaming Garland ; hee escaped not Celestines curse , who by this time being weary of peace , intended nothing else but the dispossession of Henry , from the Crowne of both Sicils . ❧ Philip the Sweuian . He raigned in the yeere of Christ 1199. about the last yeere of Richard the first . HOweuer the world fared in this age , certaine it is , that presently after the death of Henrie , the rage of the Bishop grew fiery hot against his successor . For Henrie now lying vpon his death bed , had instituted Innocent the 3 ( the successor of Celestine ) guardian to his yong infant , fower yeeres of age , yet chosen to the succession of the Empire by the Suffrage of the Princes ; To him he also recommended his wife Constance and ordained his own brother Philip Duke of Hetruria and Sweuia ( during the minority of the child ) to bee his Lieutenant , through the whole Empire and the Kingdome of Sicil . But the Bishop falsifying his faith of Guardianship , turneth traitor , and by setting al Germany in combustion , sideth with the House of Sweuia . For as Philip posting towards his sick brother , by the way about Mount Flasco , not far from Viterbium , vnderstood that his brother was departed , tranported with a desire of Soueraignty , hee hastneth as fast to Haganoa , the place of the Assembly of the Princes , and there worketh as many as he can , to fauour his proceedings . Nocentius , who in shew deadly hated the Sweuians as persecutors of the Church , but in truth sorely thirsting after the reall possession of Sicil , at first ( to giue Philip to vnderstand , that without his Holinesse acted a part in all Princely policies , it were folly to vndertake great matters ) he excepteth against him by an Excommunication , which stood on Record filed against him , in the daies of Celestine . Secondly to shew himselfe a displeased Father , he sendeth the Bishop of Sutrium vnto him , to demand at his hand certaine Hostages , whose eyes not long agoe his brother Henry had caused to be put out . Thirdly , failing , against imagination of his will ; for that Philip by confessing and repenting of his fault , had procured absolution from the Legat , and remitted the Hostages : In odium Philippi he sheweth the blind pledges to the people , and depriuing the Bishop of Sutrium , for that without commission hee had absolued Philip , he confineth him into one of the Ilands : And finally , now to perfect his proiects , he recommendeth vnto the fauours of the Electors Berthold Duke of Zazingia , a Prince strong and valiant , and whom he knew full well to be a deadly enemy to the Sweuians , because he had before times beene molested by the wars of Conrade , the brother of Philip. The letters of his election written at large , are yet to bee seen . C. venerabilem . de Electi potestate . But Berthold , being a wise and an Honorable Prince , knowing himself far inferior to Philip , and that he had been already nominated for Emperor by the generall good-liking of the Sweuians , Saxons , the Bauarians , the Bohemians and the Princes of the Rhene , so affected the fauor of his lawfull king , that in assurance of obedience , he gaue him for pledges his own Nephewes Crinen and Berthold Earles of Vrach , together with his personall oath of Allegeance . Whereat Innocent tooke so great an indignation , that he could not refraine , but belched out : That either the Bishop should dispossesse Philip of his Crown , or Philip dispossesse the Bishop of his Miter . And forthwith he calleth from England Otho the sonne of Henry Leo , a proud and harebraind Prince , and by sending him the Imperiall Diadem , he setteth him vp against Philip ; And to withdraw his subiects , he interdicteth him of all honor and authority . Hereby arose a most pestiferous dis-vnion in the state of Germany , but a masse of aduantages to the Pope and his Clergy . For as long as Philip and Otho by their intestine wars distracted the Empire , there scant fell void any Ecclesiasticall dignity , yea almost scant no poore vicarage , but being made litigious by the cunning of Rome , the dicesion of the incumbency was remooued into the Popes Court , and there peraduenture compounded ; but not without the fleecing of both parties purses . This the Abbat of Vrsperg in the end of one of his Orations doth set downe , for one of the trickes , wherby the Popedom is accustomed to trouble Christendome , meane-while enriching their priuate coffers . These be his words . Reioyce ( sayeth he ) our mother Rome : for cataracts of treasure are opened vpon earth , that riuers and masses of money in great abundance may flowe into thy bosome . Reioyce for the iniquitie of the sonnes of men , for that rewards are accumulated vpon thee to reconcile mischiefes . Reioyce for thy Adiutresse , Discord ; for shee is let loose from the bottomlesse pit , euen to breake thy backe with bagges of siluer . Now thou enioyest that , which thou hast long thirsted for : Sing a merrie Song , for by the reciprocall malice of men , and not by thy religous workes , thou hast got victorie ouer the world . All men flock vnto thee , not for deuotions sake , or in puritie of conscience , but by rewards to compound their contentions , and to redeeme their trespasses . And albeit that Odoacer King of Bohemia , Herman Lantgraue of Thuringe , the Bishop of Argentine , and Adulph Archprelate of Colein , being terrified by the papal curse , had sided with Otho , assisted with the forces of his Vncle Richard , King of England ; yet being strong with his Hetrurians leauied in Italie , and his Sweuians raised in Germanie , he beginneth with Alsatia , next neighbour to Sweuia , and wasteth it : then falling vpon the Thuringer , confederated with the Bohemian , hee inforceth him to submission , and routeth the Bohemian . This done , through the reconciliation of the Colennois , at Confluence hee treateth a league with the Dukes of Brabant & Lotharinge : with whom and his associates descending to Aquisgran , with great solemnity he is there crowned by the fore-said Colennois . Finally , meeting with Otho not farre from Colen , he put him to flight , and without his companions enforceth him to flie againe into England . When the Princes perceiued these prosperous successes to attend Philip , being now throughly wearied with these ciuill combustions ; by a generall consent , they conclude to send an honourable Embassie to his Holinesse ; who vpon restitution of Philip into fauour , should intreat his fatherhood to confirme him in the Rights of the Empire . He giueth audience , and returneth for aunswere ; that vnlesse Philip will giue vnto Richard his brothers sonne ( newly created Earle of Thuscanie ) Spolet , and Marchia Anconitana , with the daughter of Philip , hee will neuer harken vnto the Emperours Ambassie . Behold here another trick of Popish discontent : By this match , hee onely meant and hoped to inuest his Nephew in the perpetuall inheritance of these goodly Lordships . Thus haue these Holy fathers long since accustomed , vnder the habit of Saint Peter , to fish rather to inrich their Nephewes , their kindred , and their Gossips , then to be carefull ouer the Church and the common-weale ; yea , in these respects they haue often moued warres ; so that the meanes , by which God hath ordained to reconcile families , & to corroborat peace ; they haue inuerted to maintaine factions , and to serue their owne purposes . After the Embassadors had heard the proposed condition , altogether impertinent to the businesse , whereabout they had taken so much paines ; they tooke it as a strange motion ; That the daughter of a King , should be affianced to the base Nephew of a Pope : Howbeit , not to offend his Holinesse , they answered , that they had no commission to treat of any such ouerture : but desire , that by some people of his owne , hee would acquaint their Lord and Master with his Holinesse request . Whereupon , with more heat , then good discretion , he adioyneth vnto the Embassadors of Philip ( now vpon their returne ) Hugoline and Leo Cardinals of Hostia , and Saint Crosses in Ierusalem . Who arriuing at Augusta , were honourably receiued , and highly feasted , but vpon notice of the proud and preposterous message of their Master ( nothing ashamed to violate the Constitutions of his Lord Peramount ) the King and his Counsell secretly laughing at the Legats discoursing vpon matters , nothing tending to Peace and Absolution ; from Augusta the Court remoued to Spiers and so to Northius . And there after long debatement , the peace was ratified , and the Bishops Nephew reiected ; vpon condition , that the daughter of Philip ( whom the foole-Bishop eagerlie instanced ) should be affianced to Otho ; And that he liuing in priuate , during the life of Philip , after his death , should succeed in the Empire . Not long after this treatie Philip died : for leauing Saxonie , and for recreation sake retiring vnto Babenberg in Sweuia , he was traiterously slaine in his Chamber , there solely remaining , after the opening of a vain , by Otho of Wittelsback , Nephew vnto him vpon whom Frederick ( as we told you before ) had bestowed Bauaria . The cause of his discontent arose , for that being a suter to his daughter , in regard of some imputation of disloyaltie , he had beene repulsed , and the Lady , by the Emperour , her fathers good liking , affianced to Otho . After this lamentable regicide , Otho by the generall consent of the Nobility , assembled at Francofurt , is saluted Emperour . ❧ Otho the fourth . OTho , by consent of the Princes being thus installed in the Imperial throne , setteth all things through Germany in good order ; and then with a warlike Armie marching by the vally of Trent , hee passeth by Lombardie , and so commeth to Rome , to receiue the Imperiall diademe : where , by the Pope , the Clergie , and the people hee is heartely welcommed , and honourably receiued : And so much the rather , the Pope studied to honour and gratifie his Maiestie , for that hee had heretofore alwaies assisted his partie , against Philip his predecessour . But this extraordinarie kindnesse was of no long continuance betweene these new friends ; but being soone ripe , soone vanished , and turned into hatred . For vpon the very day of the Coronation , an affray began betweene the Dutch and the Romanes , about the donatiues which the Emperors accustomed to bestow at this time amongst the souldiers ; so that ( as report went ) about one thousand and one hundred men were slaine , and as many wounded . Whereupon Otho being moued at so great an indignity ; complained vnto the Romans for reparation of amends ; which they promised , but performed so slowly , that the Emperor began to enter into suspition , that the Pope himselfe became a fautor of the tumult ; whereupon hee departed , towards Millan , and there laying aside his Imperiall ensignes , hee infested Tuscanie , Mark Ancona , and Romandiola , vulgo , S. Peters patrimony . Moreouer in warlike manner he inuaded Apulia , subdued the Dutchy of Capua , and tooke from Frederick the second many other Cities pertayning to the kingdome of Sicil , at that time mistrusting no such outrage . Vpon intelligence hereof Innocent admonisheth Otho to restore the feodary possessions of the Church , and to abstaine from further violence . But Caesar not only reiecteth his admonitions , but infesteth those possessions , with more and more souldier-like depredations . Innocent flyeth to Excommunication , depriueth him of his Imperiall titles , and absolueth the Princes of their oth of allegiance towards Otho . And that more is , prohibiteth vnder paine of damnation , that no man serue , account , or call Otho Lord or Emperor . It is reported , that he caused the Princes anew to sweare vnto Frederick King of Sicil , being as yet an Infant ; and him he made choice of to succeed in his place . Whereupon Otho returned into Germany ; where , albeit in the Assembly of Noremberg , vpon complaint of the Popish tyranny , and the cowardize of the Princes , he had entred a strict bond of alliance with many ; and had moreouer taken sharpe reuenge vppon Herman Lantgraue of Thuringe by wasting his territories , for that at the Popes commandement he had violated his faith : yet at last being forsaken of his people , hee was glad to retire into Saxonie , where the fourth day after his royall mariage at Northuis with the daughter of Philip , he fell sick , and died . ❧ Fredericke the second . He raigned 1212. About the thirteenth yeare of King IOHN . FRederick the second , by the vniuersall consent of all Writers , a Prince worthy all attributes of honour , as well for his gouernment in peace , as his cariage in warre ; vpon the deiection of Otho , at the commandement of Innocent the third , tooke vpon him the Imperiall Crowne at Aquisgran . And in the yeare next following ( Otho departing at Perusium ) he was crowned at Rome , and honoured with the name of Augustus , by Honorius the third . With him hee brought many rich gifts into Italie , and amongst the rest , the Countie of Funda ; which with manie notable donatiues he bestowed vpon the Church ; And then setting Germanie in order , he prepared himselfe for the iourney of Ierusalem , according to the custome of his Auncestors : Who being deceaued by their false pretexts of Religion , imagined that they were not worthie to merit the Imperiall Diademes , but by vowes and donatiues ; First , forgetting that no Pope , but the Princes , and the people , were interessed in the election of the Emperours : And secondly , not fore seeing , that the Priests , who had too sharply felt the armes of the Princes to their extreame losse , were not so carefull to recouer Ierusalem for the Christian good , as they were prouident to direct , or distract the forces of stirring Potentates ; That mean while they might liue at pleasure , and prouide for their bellies . For the Princes being sequestred into the farthest parts of the world ( this pretext I confesse , caried a great shew of zeale & honesty ) who was left to hinder them , from making free vse of their wits at home , and that without restraint or contradiction . Howeuer Frederick in the beginning caried himself bountifull and obedient towards Honorius ; notwithstanding , his vertues could neither safe conduct his life against their subtilties , impieties and clandestine councels ; neither his bountie extenuate or lenifie their conceiued malices against his person . For , three most wicked Bishops successiuely succeeding one another , for almost thirtie yeares space , so hardly kept him to it , that his most barbarous enemies , the Turks and Saracens , may be reported to haue made faire and gentle warres against this most warlike Emperour , in regard of those trickes and tragedies , which the Romanists played him . First , Honorius immediatly after the receit of his Donatiues , without any pretence of receiued displeasure , seditiously maintained and acquited from their oathes of allegeance the two Earles of Tuscanie , Richard and Thomas , condemned of treason , & the Emperors publique & dangerous enemies . Secondly , that with more facility they might make vse of his fauour to purpose , and vsurpe vpon the Kingdomes of Sicil and Apulia , he branded the Emperor with the censure of excommunication , and ( as far as lay in his power ) depriued him of all Imperial soueraignty . After this , he prouoked the Lombards to rebellion ; so that they repelled the Princes of Germany , approching to a diet to be held at Cremona by the Emperors direction : and had done more , had not God taken him out of this world , to accompanie his predecessours in the vale of death . Gregorie the ninth succeedeth : He to seeme nothing inferiour to his predecessor , euen in the first step to his Papacie , raged worse then Honorius . He accuseth him , that according to his vow , vndertaken in the time of Honorius , to passe vnto Ierusalem , hee had not accomplished it within the prefixed time : and therefore renewing the excommunication , hee condemneth him without allowance of defence , vnsommoned and vnheard ; yea , he vtterly denieth either to heare , or to admit vnto the presence of his councell , the honourable Embassadors of his Maiestie , bringing honest & lawful reasons in excuse of their Master ; yea , petitioning to be admitted vnto satisfaction , in case their Lord had in any thing offended : But the Pope notwithstanding all offer of submission , daily intimateth his fulminations ; confirmeth in their rebellions , Iohn King of Ierusalem , the Earls of Tuscany , the Emperors rebels , & the Nobles of Lombardy ; And forbiddeth the Emperors seruants to appeare at the day of the Assembly , proclaimed by the Emperor , to be held at Rauenna ; And spoileth the crossed souldiers , bound for the iourney of Ierusalem , of all their necessaries . The Emperor obseruing this passage , to lenifie his papall anger , passeth the sea , laieth siege to Acon , and finisheth many glorious attempts to the honor of Christendom and the Christian religion . Meane time , the Pope ( O the deepe abysse of Popish impiety ) taketh his aduantage vpon the Emperours absence , subdueth Apulia , prohibiteth the crossed companies to passe the seas , & committeth infinit such like masteries , not only vnbeseeming a Christian Bishop , but much more Christ his Vicar . For first , he slaieth those Embassadors , whom the Emperor had sent vnto him to congratulate his good successe against the Soldan , & then to terrifie those cities of Apulia , which refused his yoke of subiection , he giueth out publique rumors , that the Emperor was departed this world . Hee also maketh meanes vnto the Soldan ( mean time to work his will in Apulia ) that he should not capitulate to surrender the Holy lād vnto Caesar . Here behold the piety of this Holy father : Here behold his study , & conuersion of leuies of prouisions taken vp through christendom to be imployed against Gods enemies . This is his persecution of Infidels , this his Croisado against Turks & Pagans , viz. To inuert christian armes against christians , to forsake a christian Emperor warring in a forraine land against the enemies of the Christian faith ; and especially ( I dare auow ) for the safety of Italie , as experience hath since made manifest . For mine own part in the behalfe of the whole christian cōmon weale , I can but condole for the generall captiuity of Israel , but as for the Popes I say to them , as somtime mutata regione Tasso prophetically said of the Greeks vpō the very same Argument : Tatine their guide , and except Tatine , none Of all the Greeks went with the Christian Host : O sinne ! O shame ! O Greece acurst alone ! Did not this fatal war affront thy coast ? Yet satest thou an idle looker on , And glad attendedst which side won or lost ; Now if thou be a bondslaue vile become , No wrong is that , but Gods most righteous doome . But , as in another place the same Poet spake of the Grecian Emperor , so the German Monarch might at this time say of the Romish Prelate : And for I doubt the Romish prelate slie , Will vse gainst me some of his wonted craft To stay their passage , or diuert awry Elsewhere his promis'd forces , &c. Necessity will inforce me to returne ; And so he did , towards Italy . Where , albeit by the way he had intercepted the Popes letters directed to the Soldan , containing the aforesaid instructions ; yet hauing recouered the losses suffered in his absence ; most heroically for the loue of Christ he beareth & dissembleth all forepassed greuances : And in pure deuotion to peace , of his own accord he beseecheth his holinesse to receiue him into fauour , & in requital therof , he protesteth to becom his future true liegeman for the kingdome of Sicil. What say you vnto this , you hypocrites ? Heere you see a king , humble , contrit , & studious of peace ; through this whole discourse haue I yet read of no such Pope . What are thē the signs of christianity , and true religion ? war or peace ? Humility or pride ? If you say peace & humility , where then must we seek them ? In the breasts commonly of christian Princes . And no maruell , for both the written word of God , and conscience , haue warranted their authorities : yours not so , at leastwise , in such worldly maner , as you vse it . For being nouell , and conuersant in pompeous habiliments , in Lordlie appellations , in rich patrimonies , in commerce , in treaties , inuestiture of Princes , in maintaining of garrisons , in rigging of gallies , in entertaining of noble men and captaines for seruice , how can it chuse but by plots and deuises , to maintaine these worldly charges , and titulary honors , cleane contrary to the example of Christ , the doctrine of the Apostles , and the modesty of the Primitiue Church ) you shall bee constrained to mingle the leuen of the Lord , with the abomination of Baal ; and in stead of preaching and praier ( your sole function ) to spend your times in perfecting and preuenting your own imaginations , and your enemies designements . For I know the kingdome of heauen is not of this world , neither will flesh and blood respect you as they ought , if as you say , you should carry lowly shewes , and truely practise Christian humilitie : but you know , where your reward is laid vp ; Imitate this good Emperor , and thinke with your selues , that in this he followed your sayings , and not your doings . Imitate you your sayings , but saie , and doe , and then will the world turne their bitter reprehensions , to sweetest Sonnets in praise and admiration of your liues & Embassies . And here I craue pardon for digression . Againe to the History : Albeit , most of the Princes of Germanie , Ecclesiasticall and secular , namely , Eberhard of Salisburg , Seyfrid of Ratisbone , Sibot of Augusta , Bishops : Leopold of Austria , Otho of Merouia , and Barnard of Carinthia , Dukes with many other Nobles , did to their vtmost , labour with the Pope to reconcile his displeasure against Caesar then residing at Capua : yet could not his Maiesty obtaine promise of pardon , vntill he had giuen assurance to pay into the Churches exchequer by the hands of the Master of the Teutonick order , the summe of one hundred and twenty thousand ounces of gold . Is this to forgiue thy brother seauenty times seuen ? Or can sinne and trespasses be washed away by Masses of mony ? O impudent merchant , Antichristian impostor ! The price being made , pardon followeth , and the Emperor inuited to a riotous feast , where amongst many dishes , simulata Amicitia , I assure you , is carried vp for a seruice . For the Emperor was scarce vpon his way towards Germanie , to represse the sonne of Henrie , who with the Lombards and Thuscians had rebelled against him , but he is openly giuen to vnderstand by the Princes , that by messengers in the name of the Bishop , they haue strict commandement , not to acknowledge any man of the Emperors family for King : and moreouer , that hee had conspired with the states of Italie to disgrade him of all imperiall iurisdiction . Whereat Caesar , being full of discontent , hauing tamed his rebells , hee plagueth the mutinous Cities of Hetruria and Lombardie . The Pope is now become more then mad , and to disgorge melancholy ( for otherwise it will stifle him ) againe the third time he curseth the Emperor with book , bell and candle . And to be sure at this blow to tumble him quite downe from the height of all Imperiall dignity ; first hee treateth a league with the Venetians : Then by the counsel of the Kings of France and England , hee summoneth a councell to be celebrated at Rome in the Lateran : wherein is a great dispute about the vtter abolishment of the regall authority of Fredericke . Before the first sitting the heads of the Apostles S. Peter and S. Paul , with due solemnity are carried round about the City . And lastly , in the Cathedrall Church of Saint Peter , he maketh a sermon full of Commiseration ; proclaimeth the Croisado , and promiseth life euerlasting to as many , as shall take vp armes against his Maiestie . Frederick being giuen to vnderstand , that the Croisado was now proclaimed against him , which was neuer from the daies of Adam heard of , to be divulged against any , but Turks and Infidels , waxeth exceeding angry , and directeth his forces to the walls of Rome ; combatteth with the Romanes , rowteth them with a miserable slaughter , and spareth not a man , marked with the Crosse . To some crosse-wayes he commanded foure words to be giuen . Others had their heads clouen a crosse , and the Clergie-men hee willed to be shauen to the quick , and the signe of the crosse to be imprinted vpon their bald pates ; that so they , who were but said to be signed with the Crosse , might be so signed indeed . Afterward , by a long and tedious siege , hauing forced Furentia , and hearing that the Pope had sent forth his Legats , to summon the English and French Prelats to the Councell ; he shutteth vp by sea and by land all passages : and by the seruice of the Pisans taketh some Cardinals , and many Prelates passing by sea , and committeth them to prison . Two Cardinals hee drowneth , and assigneth to the gallowes some Abbots and Bishops , but especially the Popes brother , for their vnpardonable treasons . Whereupon , this good holy father , sorrowing to see so many of the Lords annointed , for treason to be so sharply vsed by Frederick , became so moued and distempered at the indignity , that falling into sicknesse , through griefe of minde , hee departed the same way , which his beloued Sons , had but lately foregone . Celestine the fourth succeedeth , and intendeth to proceed in the steps of his predecessor against Frederick , had not death summoned him to attend another businesse in a fitter place . For hee sate Bishop but eighteene daies , and then was poisoned in drinking . Innocentius the third succeeded ; whilom the Emperours deuotest friend , but now his most bitter enemy ; persecuting his Maiesty with more furie , then any of his deceased predecessors . And thus it fell out . Baldwin the Grecian Emperor , hoping to play the part of a good Christian , in supplying the office of him , who was vtterly degenerated from all remembraunce of his owne function and calling , laboured what hee could to set vnity betweene these two mighty monarchs : ( for so is all Popery in truth , though not in shew . ) But the Bishop , hauing no mind to hearken to so Christian-like a motion , dealeth with the Geneois ( hauing a Nauie at that time riding at anchor in the Port of Centumcellae ) to transport him vnto Lyons in France , and there illuding both Princes for their kindnesse and paines-taking , proclaimeth a concionable ; causeth Fredericke to bee cited , yea himselfe in the end of his Homely , citeth him : and for default of appearance ( although his sufficient substitute , Thadeus Suessanus , a most famous Lawyer , humbly desired his Furiousnesse but to allow him a sufficient returne , whereby hee might haue conuenable time for his repaire to Lyons ) he denieth him respit ; accurseth him ; depriueth him of al Imperial honors ; absolueth his subiects , & abetteth them in despight of Frederick , to make choice of some other . Most impudently alleadging ( so did euer the Pharisies by Christ , because otherwise they could not effect their wills ) very vile , false and forged suggestions against him , as blasphemies , periuries , sacrilege , and such like stuffe : which see in C. Apostol . de sent . & re iudicata , lib. 6. The Emperor hearing hereof , setteth Italie in order , and with a compleat army marcheth towards Lyons , there face to face to bandy with this insolent Prelate . But thinke you a Pope to be so silly an Asse , as to deale with his forewarned enemy ? no beleeue it . His conscience can not assure his heart to look him in the face : He must deale altogether vpon aduantage , ciuill dissentions , alienations of obedience , trecheries , periuries , discontents of neighbour-Princes and subiects . At which weapons he now dealeth with the Emperour ; and hauing his scouts , his espialls and Intelligencers in euery corner through the world , by their seruices , he worketh the banished gentlemen of Parma , to returne to their country , and there to plot out myriads of rebellions against those Cities , which as yet in Italie stood well affected to the Emperors seruice . Whereupon before his Maiesty could come to Taurinum , in feare that the residue of the Italian people would one follow anothers example , he quitteth his Lyons-iourny ; and by letters , directed both vnto the King of France , as also to the prelats there assembled , in most honest termes he refuteth his enemies obiections , discourseth at large vpon the insufficiency and nullity of a Popish curse , and withall strongly prepareth by sea to reduce Parma to its former obedience . But good Emperour , the greater thy learning , the more their griefe : the greater thy courage , the more vigilant is thy diuill-like enemy for thy ruine . Thou staiest at Grossetum , about the sea coast of Sienna , there to refresh thy wearied and ouerwrought spirits , with some disports of hauking ; Thou wilt not get thee into Germanie , nor repasse the mountaines : Then will thy ghostly father meditate night and day to vndoe thee ; then will he traiterously inueigle thy principall seruants , some by wrested sentences of Scripture , and some by corruption of mony , to worke thy downfall . Thus imitate they Christ in blessing their enemies ; Thus honor they Kings according to Saint Peter ; But ( thanke thy God ) the conspiracie was detected , and the traytors worthely punished . Nocentius beeing fallen into a desperate fury , for that he had failed in these his most nefarious proiects , in seeing the Emperor for this time fully cleered from his diuelish intendments , grew yet resolute , not to giue ouer , vntill hee had really dispossest him of his crowne & life . Which to effect , by threats , exhortations , & promises he aweth the Princes of Germanie to depose Frederick , and in his place to set vp Henrie Lantgraue of Thuringe . But this gentleman following the seruice of his master at the siege of Vlmes , was deadly wounded the same yeere wherin he was nominated King. So also his successor William , beeing imploied in other wars , performed nothing in fauour of his Furiousnesse . Whereupon the Pope obseruing his Anathems to be vilified , his rebellious hirelings in Italy to be throughly persecuted , & his aduersary to be resolute and vndaunted , after long and manifold trecheries plotted , and frustrated , at last , he procureth him to be poisoned in the two and thirtith yeere of his raigne , and the fifty seauenth of his age , on the very same day wheron he was declared Emperor , Caesar , Augustus . Thus , this most worthy Heros , this Frederick the second , Emperor of Germany , king of both Sicils and Hierusalem , Lord of Sardinia and Italie , & Duke of Sweuia , an excellent Prince , adorned with all good gifts dained by God vnto man , aswell for the furniture of mind , as body ; valiant , honorable , liberall ; a great linguist , and excellent well learned , finished his mortall race : who , had he not been diuerted , from turning his Christian Armes against the Pagans , by the rebellions of Italy , and the Papall abetments thereto , verely he had merited more praise of the Christian world , then Alexander in due could haue exacted of his Macedonian subiectes . Verely , If this our Age ( miserably shaken with this inueterate Papall tyranny ) by this president would learne , what emolument , peace and plenty would accrue both to the Church and common-weale , by due ballancing the temporall and Ecclesiasticall Authorities ; then would I not doubt , but to behold the German Empire most great , most glorious , and the Papall vsurpation once again reduced to its pure and primitiue integrity . More in commendation of this good Emperor I can not say , but onely wish that the Motto , which was once vnderwritten Brutus his statue , and now due to him ( vtinam viueres ) might at this day be reuiued in the hearts of all Christian Potentates to reuindicate their pristinate prerogatiues . But who shall recomfort the Laments of Sion ? Albeit that this most worthy Generall was gathered in peace to the bed of his fathers , yet Death had no priuiledge to giue period either to the extinguishment or satiation of these Popes neuer dying malice . For , against all humane beliefe , and the diuine precepts it raged with so inhumane a feruencie against this Emperors posterity , that it neuer gaue ouer , vntil it had depriued his issue both of life and Empire . For forthwith from the decease of Frederick , these ( three Popish Sultans ) Innocent the third , Alexander and Vrban the fourth , following the continual streame of their proud fortunes , imployed the vtmost of their meanes to re-inuest the Kingdome of Naples in the Church , and to strip thereof the House of Sweuia ; but in vaine ; for Manfred maintained and retained it valiantly as yet against all their violences ; vntill Clement the fifth following the claime of his Predecessor Vrbans Intrusion , called Charles Earle of Prouince and Aniow out of France , to take possession thereof : vpon condition , that Manfred being expulsed , Hee should yearely pay vnto the Church of Rome in the Name of a Tenure thirtie thousand Duckets ; And for farther encouragement ; Not to accept the inuestiture thereof , though freelie offered , from the Romane Emperour , hee caused him to be stiled , King of both Sicils . Which done , in the Lateran Church , hee is inaugurated with the Crowne of Sicil and Hierusalem . And after manie and various conflicts , hee not onely ouerthroweth , and slayeth Manfred at Beneuent , betrayed by his people : but also , extinguisheth the sole heire of the noble house of Sweuia , the stem of many worthy Emperors , Conrade the son of Conrade , whō he got vnto his power by treasō neer Naples ; & there by the wicked dispensatorie counsel of the Pope , with more then Phalarian cruelty struck off his head , for going about to recouer his owne , but indeed , vpon suggestion that hee persecuted the Church . For Clement , after he had heard the opinion of manie wise men , perswading him that Conrade , as being the onely branch of the most noble house of Sweuia , was to be preferred , and obliged to the Romane sea by fauours and affinitie , turned himselfe to Charles , and would needes know of him , what he also deemed : To whom the Traytor made this butcherly Reply . Vita Conradini , mors Caroli : Mors Conradini , vita Coroli . i. The life of Conrade will be death to Charles ; The death of Conrade , life to Charles . By which his brutish opinion , hee thus whetted on a minde already prepared for murder ; by manifest presumptions fore-shewing , that hee was already acquainted with some plot of treason against Conrade . For after he vnderstood , that Conrade with a puissant armie of Germanes , was passed Viterbium , where then his Holinesse resided , he was heard to prophesie , That he was led as a Lamb to the slaughter . Thus , the posteritie of Frederick being for manie ages turmoiled by this succession of Bishops , after infinit practises at last was vtterly ruinated by these bloudie monsters : yea , the Princes of Germanie were so involued in these fatal oppositiōs , that none of thē either daring or willing to weare a Crowne at so deare a reckoning , Alphons of Spaine , and Richard of England , by mony and the Popes fauour ( as the world saith ) began to aspire vnto that Dignity , which for so many ages past , the Germaines alone had enioyed , and honourably maintained . But neither of them , either in iealousie one of another , or in feare of their predecessors harmes , euer came to the reall possession thereof , so that for the space almost of 22. yeares , the Empire became an Anarchy , and so continued , vntill by the generall suffrage of all the Princes , Rodulph of Hauespurg was chosen Emperour . ❧ Rodulphus Habspurgicus . He raigned Anno 1273. About the second yeare of Edward the first . AFter these lamentable Tragedies acted vpon the person of Frederick & his issue , is Rodulph of Hauespurg , elected King of Romanes . Who , albeit he had pleighted his faith to Gregorie the tenth , that hee would come to Rome , and there be crowned ; as also , had studied to deserue the friendship of him , and other his successours , with extraordinarie indeuours ; For that , time had taught him , that euen against all humane reason , this viperous generation had clearely extinguished the two most worthy and glorious families , of France and Sveuia ; As also , for that , they had transferred the Kingdome of Naples from the race of Frederick , to the house of Aniow ; and therfore thought with himselfe , that such Potentates , as they , were not rashly to be prouoked , especially being now shielded with the fauours of the French , and the peeuishnesse of the Germane Bishops ; As also , that it was worke enough , beseeming the Maiestie of a good and gracious Emperour , to tender the welfare of his natiue Country , now almost ruinated and rent by ciuill dissentions : Notwithstanding his godlinesse , his clemencie , his deuotion , his humanity , his modestie , and his obseruancie , yet could hee deserue no other retribution from these vngratefull Politicians , but intrusions vpon his Crowne , and taunts against his person . For Honorius the fourth , being Bishop at that season , arrogating vnto himselfe all Regall authority , directly against the good will of Rodulph , constituted Priziualna Earle of Ianua , vicar Generall of the Empire throughout Italy . And after his Maiestie for mony had quite claimed vnto many Cities their liberties , this Honorius most wickedly sealed this scandalous transaction . After the decease of Honorius , Nicholas the fourth had vtterly dispossest this Emperour of Romandiola and Rauenna , vnder the false pretext of an expedition against the Turke , had not Death taken truce with his traiterous intents . By a new creation of two Kings in Italie , the one to gouerne Lumbardy , the other Tuscanie , he had plotted , that by the commodiousnesse of their scituations all alongst the Teutonick Alps , from hence by armes he might alwaies haue meanes to curb the French , who now hold Sicil , and the goodly Kingdome of Naples in full possession . Wherof Rodulph taking notice , resoluing with himselfe neuer to be made a stale to an other mans despight , which by affectation of a titularie Crowne in Italie , publiquely at all times giueth forth , that at some time or other , he would find sufficient occasions of diuersion and redresse ; but in plain termes he intimateth to his friends , that he was wholly deterd from iournying into Italy , for that he had formerly obserued , That the entrance of the Caesars thereinto was applauded , honoured , and full of hopes : but their returnes aukward , heauie , mournfull and miserable . Not impertinently alluding vnto Esops fable of the Wolfe ; who told the Lyon lying sick in his den , That in truth he had no reason to enter , considering that he could well obserue the footing of euery beast in entrance , going forward , but not of one , returning backward . ❧ Albertus Primus . He raigned 1298. About the six and twentieth yeare of Edward the first . ALbeit Albert succeeding his father Rodulph , in the Empire , continued the same obseruancy towards the Roman Monarchy , as his father formerly had done : yet could he by no meanes escape the bitter quips & taunts of these cloistered asses . For , at what time by his Ambassadours according to custome hee praied of Boneface the eight , the Confirmation of his Election , Boneface hauing a sword by his side , and the Imperiall Crowne vppon his head , sheweth himselfe in publique to the assemblie , and with a high voice exclaymeth : Ego sum Caesar & Pontifex : Behold , here is Caesar and the Pope : And in furie ( whereas it mought haue been done without his priuity or authority ) hee reiecteth the Election as friuolous and of no force ; denieth confirmation , and with a full-foule mouth , calleth him Homicide . Afterwards , vpon a bitter quarrell arising between this Maleface and Philip King of France , for that his Maiesty would not acknowledge him for his supreme Lord , he chāged his first opinion ; aprooued Albert Emperor ; by his Breues inuested him with the Kingdom of France , and in a full Consistorie Excommunicated Philip. Yet againe when Albert re-answered , that he would not stir one foote against the King of France , vnlesse his Holynesse would confirme him and his heires in the Kingdome and Empire : The Pope , not able to conceale his imprisoned displeasure , most arrogantly replied : Non futurum id Iezabele viuente ; That , that should neuer come to passe , so long as Iezabel liued By which abusiue name , he pointed at that most noble Dame Elizabeth , the wife of Albert , the daughter of Menihard , Earle of Tirol , and sister by the mothers side to Conrade late Duke of Sweuia . In shew cauelling at this noble Lady , as an implacable persecutrix of Clergy men against Gods commandements , but in truth , most barbarously enuying her in memory of her brother and her deceased Auncestors , for their claming and retaining of their hereditary royalties against the vsurpations of the former Bishops . Let the world be Iudge , if they continue not the like , yea the very same stratagems , against all Princes at this day , if they but crosse their ambitions . The man that feareth God would think , that a good and a vertuous life , especially in a Prince , should warrant his daies from vexation , and his graue from infamy . But here you see the contrary : Albert followeth the steps of his father ; he is humble , in offensiue , glad to please , yet not well requited : His Lady neither medleth nor maketh with these contentious persons , and yet in regard that her Auncesters displeased the Roman prelacie , shee sauoreth ; and must be disgraced in most opprobrious manner : yea the depth of the graue can not secure her honorable friends from railing , so furious is the fire of a Popish conscience . No maruell : for this is that Boniface the eight , who ( like the Diuell in the Gospell ) censured all principalities and powers to bee in his donation ; who vsurped vpon both swords , and would needs haue inforced the whole world , to haue acknowledged him their Lord Peramount : glorying that to him were committed the keies of Heauen gate : That he ought to be iudged of no man , no though hee carried a million of soules with him to hell for company . ❧ Henricus Septimus . Hee raigned Anno 1308. About the second yeere of Edward the second . AFter the decease of Albert , Henrie of that name the seuenth , of the House of Lucelburge , by the lawfull suffrage of the Electors , is nominated Emperor . Clement the fift ( then High-Priest ) liuing at Auignion , ( well fare the iarre betweene him and Philip the French King ) in odium Philippi , gaue so courteous and facil a way vnto this election , that sending his Legats through all the quarters of Germanie and Italie , hee gaue strict commandement , that Henry should be acknowledged Emperor , and really confirmed in the election ; prouided that , within the space of two yeares , hee should come to Rome to be crowned , and personally visit Italy , which now by reason of sixty yeares absence of the Germane Emperours , was miserably afflicted with intestine dissensions . But the Pope could not long be Master of his own breast , hee must needes follow the accustomed knauerie of his vafrous predecessours . For when Henrie , in satisfaction of his promises , had made his perambulation throughout euerie Prouince of Italie ; had twice rowted Rupert King of Apulia with the Vrsins ; approached Rome , and expected his Coronation in the Cathedrall Church of Saint Peter : The Pope , repenting him of his forwardnesse , by calling to minde of Henries powerfulnesse , and Ruperts friendship , at first commandeth the Cardinals not to proceede to Henries inauguration ; and then againe vpon the Emperours serious expostulation , changing his interdiction ; hee assenteth , conditionally , that hee take an oath of fidelity to the sea of Saint Peter . Which when his Maiestie refused , alleadging the president to be new , and but lately vsurped in the dayes of some fewe of his Predecessours , That the chiefest Prince of Christendome should be obliged by an oath of fealtie to the seruant of seruants at last with much a-doe , but vtterly against the Popes minde , by the loyall seruice of Steuen of Colonna , he was crowned by the Cardinals . For , Clement himselfe in deadlie hatred against Him , reuolted to Rupert King of Apulia , by a lawfull triall condemned of high treason ; and reuersed his sentence of condemnation , not so much for any defect in Law , but in extreame malice against his Maiestie . Thus was the quarrell pickt against Henry ; obserue the cause thereof , I beseech you , and tell me if the president hold not with their practises at this day . But by the suddaine and immature departure of this religious Emperor , nothing was effected . For , Henrie now being resolued to take vpon him the Crowne of Sicilie , being thereunto nominated by the Sicilians , vpon the vigil of the Assumption of our Lady was come as farre as Bonconuent : Where , by Bernard the false dominican Monke , who before times had giuen many hypocriticall testimonies of seruice towards his Maiestie , by a new and neuer heard of example , at Masse mingled poison , and the powder of Adamant ( which as men say bringeth speediest death ) into the communion cup , and so slew his Lord and soueraigne . All the wakes , Annals , records , songs , rithmes , verses and Epigrams written in those daies , doe make ample relation of this tragedy . But the whole Rabble ( and blame them not ) of the Dominicans do vtterlie deny it ; giuing out , that in griefe of mind , for that he could not be fully reuenged vpon his enemies , hee gaue vp tho ghost , after he had receiued letters from his Holinesse in testimoniall of this afore-said villaines innocencie . But howeuer ; These faire glosses could not so exempt their Order from the suspition of this murder , but that many of their Couent , together with their houses were burnt and destroyed by sword and fire in manie places throughout Tuscanie and Lombardy . ❧ Lodouicus Bauarus . He raigned Anno 1314. About the seuenth yeare of Edward the second . HEnry ( last spoken of ) being thus dispatched , the tempest which in his life time lay smothered in embers , in hideous maner now breaketh out vpon the head of his successors . For Frederick of Austria , and Lewes of Bauaria being both by the discordant suffrages of the Electors , named for Caesars , Iohn the 22. findeth an occasion to disquiet them both ; and first in very ignominious fashion hee quarelleth with Frederick . And thus it fared : Conrade the Bishop of Gurcia was sent to Rome by the Austrians , to desire his Holinesse in fauour of Frederick , to giue assent to the election , and to represse Lewes ; where , in making his Oration , he chanced to discourse , vpon the praises of Frederick his grandfathers and great-grandfathers , concluding , that the Christian world was likely to reape nothing contrarie to expectation , considering , That it was alwaies seene , that from good and valiant Parents , discended good and valiant children ; yet by your fauour , most arrogantly and impertinently replied his Holinesse ; Of all men liuing without question Salomon was the wisest , and yet he begot a sonne most foolish . Not obscurely intimating thereby , that Frederick was degenerated from the vertues of his auncestors , and therefore vnworthy of the Imperiall diademe . VVas this displeasure , deeme yee , of continuance ? no surely ; for then had it not beene papall . But at that time Iohn had no neede of Fredericke : Lewes Iudas-like was saluted King , and the beloued sonne : But now Mapheus with his sonnes the Visconti , are vp in Italy , and assaulting Genoa . And thereupon must a league of reconciliation be priuily contracted with Frederick to the expulsion of Lewes , and the re-ordering of Mapheus . Eight yeares after his election , Frederick was foiled in field , and taken prisoner : Howbeit , the Pope prosecuteth Lewes with continuall malice ; denounceth him an Enemie to the Church , a Schismatike , and an Heretike ; First , for that immediatly vpon his Election , without his Holinesse permission , hee had stiled himselfe Emperour ; secondly , for that hee presumed to relieue certaine of his yonger bretheren being condemned of heresie , and outlawed after excommunication ; and thirdly , for his rash assistance sent to Galeas Visconti of Millan against his holy forces . Whereupon Lewes , vnderstanding by the best Diuines and Lawyers of that age , that the acts and sayings of Iohn were repugnant to Christ his Doctrine : That the Pope in truth ought to be subiect to the Emperor , and not the Emperor to him in temporall causes : tooke thereat such incouragement , that , he appealed from the Pope male informato ( as the Lawyers speake ) to the Pope meliùs informando , at the next generall Councel to be held , when he sate at Rome in Peters chaire . Meane time , valiantly and vigilantly hee preuenteth all iniuries , and diuulgeth the Tenor of the Appeale throughout all the Prouinces of Germany . During these verball and scribeling contentions , it came to passe , that the Romans being throughly tormented with their ciuill dissentions , sent their submissiue Orators to Iohn , with humble supplications to intreat his Holinesse ; that leauing Auignion , he would re-uisite Rome , and confer the Imperial Inuestiture vpon the King of Romans : this if he refused , they certified him in plaine termes , that they would renue the ancient Lawes and gouernment of the Romane people . Iohn not only denieth their requests , but with threats and minaces , in most ignominious maner dismisseth the Orators : At which his pride the Romans being not a little offended , by letters and Ambassies call Lewes to Rome as their lawfull Emperor . Lewes granteth the motion , and with his army taketh his way towards Italy ; and at Millan according to the accustomed manner is crowned by the Archbishop . After this , making choice rather by humility , then armes , to asswage the Bishops wrath , he sendeth messengers vnto him , humbly to desire his fatherhood to confer the vsuall and Imperiall honours vpon his Maiesty . Which when the Bishop not only gainsayd , but despighteously dismissing his Ambassadors , peremptorily cited his Maiesty to Auignion ; As report goeth : Caesar as hauing full experience of the Papall tyranny , yet willing to preserue the Imperiall dignity ( collated from aboue ) holy and inuiolable , vtterly refuseth slaue-like to prostrate himselfe before the Pope , or to appeare at Auignion . But to auoid the effusion of blood , he is content in peaceable maner by proxy to become a sutor for his collation . But herein finding the Pope as stiffe as himselfe , and his friendes the Visconti to his disgrace alreadie accursed , he maketh no more adoe ; but setting Millane in order , he iournyeth to Rome , where with great applause by the commaundement of the people and the Clergie , together with his wife hee is Crowned by Cardinall Steuen Colonna , the whole Nobility assisting , and crying , GOD saue Lodowicke Augustus Emperour of Romanes . And foorthwith by all their good liking , he createth Peter of Corbar , a Minorit , a man learned and in-ured to Gouernement , High Priest : Hee causeth the counterfet of Iohn to be made in wood , and in the presence of Caesar most ignominiously consumeth it to ashes ; pronouncing him an Heretique , a destroier of the Church , and a publique enemy to the peace of Christendome . Iohn again , thundreth out cruell processe against Lewes , depriueth him of all imperiall preheminence , and excommunicateth him as a Rebell and Arch-heritique against the Roman Church . Wherupon the Emperor , to whom Italy became displeasāt , partly for that he had already determined to make no long abode therein , & partly in feare of poison , wherwith he knew the Romanists were better acquainted , then with arms , made his retrait into Germany . Whether ( no sooner ariued ) but newes was spred abroad of Iohns departure , to the vniuersall ioy of all wel-minded Christians , in hope that by the election of a new Bishop , all old quarrels should lie buried with their framer . But not so : For Benedict the twelfth succeeding in the Popedom , succeeded also in all Popish qualities against this Emperor ; confirming all the censures , and depriuations which his predecessor Iohn had sued out against him . Whereupon , Caesar perceiuing that these fiery spirits would neuer be at peace , vntill by the vtter ouerthrow and disgrace of all temporall Authority , they had fully and forceably strengthned their owne greatnesse , at Franckford he assembleth the Princes , with the wise-men of his Kingdom ; persons of immatcheable dexterity in diuine and humane sciences , and there , by the aduise of the most zealous and best learned , hee publisheth a Decree vnder his seale against the iniurious processe of the dead Bishop : therein rendring a most Christianlike account of his faith , plainly & ingenuously confessing , that as it became a true Catholike he beleeued all the Articles of the Christian veritie . To these by solemne proclamation hee annexeth many notable edicts , to the ancient Constitutions he addeth some new , and corroborateth the old , viz. That the Electors of the Empire , and no man besides , should intermeddle in the election of the King of Romans : Whereunto the Princes and nobility gaue their full consent : Ordaining moreouer , that who euer was nominated King or Emperor , should be acknowledged for the true , supreme , and indubitate Soueraign of the Empire , being indeed though different in name , yet the same in effect . That without any confirmation or approbation from the Apostolique sea , he might absolutely gouerne and administer iustice throughout the Empire . And that after publication from the Princes , in case of lawfull proceeding in the election , the Pope is bound to anoint him : And in defalt of refusall or denial , that any other catholique Bishop is as capable as the Pope , to proclaime him Emperor , Caesar , Augustus ; Considering that these formal and solemne ceremonies , are but things indifferent deuised by the Popes , conferring only titles and names , but no matter of substance . For what Roman Bishop consecrated the Constantinopolitan Emperors ? what Pope before Charles his time , the ancient Augusti ? or who before Constantine the Ethnike Caesars ? And then , the Emperor acknowledged no oth of fidelity , but of obseruancy and of defending the faith . From this point , he proceedeth to prooue , that in case of vacancy , the Imperial election diuolueth not to the Papacy : and that , the prescription is derogatory to the liberty , dignity , the rites and maiesty of the sacred Empire , but in truth by long and aprooued custome from Antiquity , and stl in vse , that all Iudicature , fealties and priuiledges of conferring and disposing of all rights , interests , & demands , belonged & do belong to the House of the Count Palatine of the Rhene , during the vacancy , notwithstanding the constitutions of the Clementines . What pen can be so partiall , as not to giue due commendation to the prudency of this good Emperor , being seasoned with so plentifull a measure of discretion ? who so modestly carried himselfe between the Princes & the Pope , that the former admired his wisedom , and the later celebrated his goodnesse ? For in Benedicts prime-entrance into the pontificacy , vpon occasion of discontents between his holinesse and the French king his Maiestie vnderstanding therof , by meanes made for reconciliation and absolution , vnto which the Bishop , after hee had entered into a large field of discourse in praise of Germany and this Emperour , condiscended ; promising to be mindfull of the motion ; concluding , That that Noble branch of the Church ( meaning Lewes ) which now began to be seperated , should again be re-ingrafted into the body of the tree . Vpō another occasion , when the Embassadors of the kings of France and Apulia , had scandalized his Maiestie for plotting of diuers indignities against the Court of Rome : his Holines excused him with great earnestnes , openly anouching , that the Clergie had wronged him , and not he the Clergie . But howeuer , at this time he acknowledged the innocencie of Lewes , yet afterwards , when the king of France in despight of the Emperor & the Pope , had slily preuented the returne of certaine Cardinals into his kingdom ; and that Iohn king of Bohemia , & Henry Duke of Bauaria , had traiterously cōspired to elect a new Emperor , he suffered himselfe with small intreaty to be disswaded from his former resolution of Absolution : yea , after the king of France & his Maiestie had capitulated a peace , full sore against his mind ; vpon request to haue it ratified by his Holines , he flatly denied it ; cauelling , that Lewes being now declared an heretike , ought not again to be accounted a Christian at the kings plesure . Thus may you see how the Popes were accustomed to play fast and loose with the German Emperors . Well , the Absolution by this nicity being adiourned , and the Emperor well obseruing wherunto these pontifical policies tended , summoneth the Princes and Electors to a Diet at Rensium . There with ease , by his affability , liberality and clemency , he so deuoteth their loyalties to his seruice , that by solemne oath they not onely auow to maintaine and defend the honor of the Empire : but they also decreed , the Processes of Iohn late Pope of Rome , returned against his Maiestie , to be void and of no validity : yea , that a Bishop ought not to entertaine any such practises against an Emperour , for that their iurisdictions were meerly of distinct natures . Benedict dieth , & Clement the 6. succeedeth : an effeminat Prelat , extraordinarily ambitious of honor & potencie . Who had no sooner seated his foot in the chair of Lucifer , but his furious Genius took such hold of his hart , that in Latin & Dutch libels affixed vpon church dores , he summoneth his Maiestie vnder the censure of extream penāce , within three daies space to make satisfaction , to God & the church ( meaning himself ) as also to desist frō further medling in the affaires of the Empire ; which limitation being expired , & no appearance recorded , he proceedeth to sentence of cōtumacie . Afterwards , whē his Proctors craued forgiuenes , with an offer to performe all iniunctions to vtmost : he was not ashamed to motion so foule an attonement , as neuer Pagan demanded of his Captiue slaue : viz. That hee should confesse and acknowledge all his errors and heresies . That he should resigne the Empire : and simply commit his children , and all his moueables into his tuition . Where is now become , O Lucifer , thy pastoral humility ? where thy fatherly aspect ? where thy representatiue Holinesse ? Notwithstanding , albeit the poorest refuse of the world would not haue accepted of these basest conditions , yet this good Emperour , fore-seeing , that if he should not bend ; warre , slaughter & spoiles would ensue , he receiued the pontificall libell ; signed it with his seale , and swore to obserue it ; so farre forth humiliating his deiection , that vpon relation thereof , the whole Colledge of the scarlet-roabed-fathers could not chuse but receiue it with vnaccustomed admiratiō . But the Emperor vpon sounder aduice , considering with himselfe , that without the consent of the Electors , and of the Princes & the estates of the Empire , it was against the fundamentall Law to accept of any such Capitulation , in the next assembly at Frankford , hee causeth the tenor of the reconciliation to be read before the whole Assembly . They giue sentence , that it tendeth in most points to the preiudice and destruction of the state , and therefore reiect it : They promise to stand fast vnto his Maiestie ; in case , as before , he would re-assume his courage , and resolutely defend the honour of the Empire . And to conclude , they dispatch an Embassie to the Pope , with intimation , that from thence-forth he should cease from such friuolous conuentions , being purposely deuised to dishonour the Maiestie of the German Empire . They arriue before his Holinesse ; they expostulate the rigour of the Articles to the preiudice of the Empire : nothing else they inforce , nothing else they demand : But his Holinesse inraged like an illuded Tigresse ; layeth all the blame vpon Lewes , & with deeper hart-burning then before , falleth into treatie with Iohn and Charles Kings of Bohemia , heretofore ouerthrowne by Lewes , and with their vncle Baldwin , Archbishop of Treuers , to destoy Lewes and his whole posterity . The bargaine agreed vpon by these Pseudo Christians , in the yeare of our Sauiour 1346. vpon Maundy-Thursday , hee is most irreligiously accursed by Benedict ; and by the renouation of the Processe ( sent out by his predecessour Iohn ) declared an Heretique and scismatique . To aggrauate the despight , and by effects to shew the solidity of his religion , hee commandeth the Electors within a proportioned time , to make choise of another . Loe , the Emperor rather then he will be an instrument of slaughter and faction , disgraceth his high calling by acceptance of basest articles ; but the Pope rather then he will want of his will , vnico statu ( as the prouerb is ) will depose , set vp , commend , dispraise , blesse and curse ; and without all respects , either of conscience or humanity , set all Christendome on outrage , to be reuenged on one creature . Were this the practise but of One , the imputation were excusable , as a defect in manners , but through the whole Legend of euery Emperours life , you shall obserue the one abstinent , yea timorous , for conscience sake to defile euen his imaginations with humane blood : the other rigorous , wrathfull , impatient , and quarrelsome : somtime vpon donatiues , sometime vpon iura imperij , and sometimes vpon non augmenting of Saint Peters patrimonie . Which irreligious and Antichristian outrages , albeit they know them in their consciences to be absolutely diabolicall , repugnant to Christian Doctrine , and pernicious to all ciuill society , yet rather then any Pope or Popeling will let fall any one particle of vnlawfull vsurpation , gained by any the wickedest of his predecessours , words and workes shall flie at randon vpon euery occasion , so that it would amaze a very Turke to heare with what shifts , with what euasions , and distinctions of spiritualia , they will stuffe whole volumes in iustifying of their falsifications , in wresting and curtailing of Authors , in denying manifest Records , in railing on their opposites , and pressing mens consciences with miracles , policies , and impostures . Insomuch , that if words will not worke , impostures shall seduce ; if impostures prooue fruitlesse , swords shall walke , if swords be preuented , then poisons and treasonable practises shall put end to the controuersie . Blood must satiate , or the Church cannot be satisfied . But to our History : The Electors haue a peremptory day giuen them , against which if they produce not their Anti-emperor , the Pope protesteth by no irreligious reliques , that rather then the Church shall want a Lieuetenant , an Aduocate ( Himselfe must bee Captaine and chiefe Iustice ) hee will set vp One of his sole Election . Well , oaths must be kept inuiolable , especially with traitors , and so doth his Holinesse . And thus he beginneth his web . Henrie of Wittenberg Archbishop of Mogunce , and one of the electors , for his loiall adherency vnto his Lord and master , to curry fauour with the Bohemians , he depriueth of all his ecclesiasticall and temporall capacities , and into his place he intrudeth Gerlace his Chaplein , the Nephew of Adolph of Nassaw , once King of Romans . This new Papall Bishop in satisfaction of his Lord and masters expectation , and in requitall of like office towards the Bohemians for their choice and election , vpon the assembly of the Princes at Rensium , for the nomination of a new Emperor , worketh with Baldwin of Treuers , Walram of Colein , Rodulph Duke of Saxonie , and Iohn the father a Bohemian , to nominate and elect Charles King of Bohemia for supreme Lord of the Empire . But for all this ; albeit Charles in the life time of Lewes was crowned at Bonna , yet such was his reputation , and such the affection of all the good townes through the Empire towards his seruice , that vpon a conuocation of a Diet , and that after the coronation of Charles ; No one of the Princes was found , either to second the election , or to regard the Popes Breues , or to swarue from their promised fidelity . Had he beene a Popelike Prince ; that is , If to worke his will , he would haue hazarded his Title vpon warre and bloodshed , what could hee not haue performed . But beeing of a quite contrary disposition , and guided by the best spirits of vnpartiall Prechers , he neuer began a warre against any man , though prouoked , but onely for the quiet and honour of his country ; And in detestation of slaughter , resolued with himselfe neuer to determine a quarrel by warre , if any secondarie meanes might finish it by peace ; and therefore betaking himselfe to his quietest dispositions , by the trechery of Clement ( as some Authors report ) he was poysoned at a meriment , and after as he rode on hunting , as soon as by labor and the motion of his beast his blood heated , hee fell headlong from horsebacke . Thus , most vnworthyly was this Emperor to the griefe of all good Christians made away , in the second yeere after the election of Charles , the fift of the Ides of October , in the yeere of Grace 1347. after hee had so honourably gouerned the Empire for the space of thirty and three yeeres , that those good spirits who all his life time had administred vnto him true and loyall seruice against al Papisticall malediction , now after his death with like constancy and honesty defended his neuer dying memory , against all Shemeis posterity ; as at this day it is apparantly seen , not only by record of history , but also by the particular letters of the Consul of Basil . And thus it is : the Bishop of Bamberg ( by vertue of a commission directed vnto him from Auignion by the Popes authority , to absolue as many as adhered vnto Lewes ) the yeere following the death of Lewes , iournied with Charles towards Basil : At his ariuall he made a very perswasiue speech to induce the Inhabitants , sithence they stood excommunicated in the behalfe of Lewes for assisting his party , with all humility to demand absolution : vnto whome Conradus of Bernsfield , the Maior of the City , in the presence of Charles , and the rest of the nobility , as well secular as ecclesiasticall , made this resolute reply : Lord of Bamberg , know , that we will neither confesse nor beleeue , that our Soueraigne Lord Lewes , Emperor of Romans , was euer an Heretique : But howeuer ; whomsoeuer the Electors shall impose vpon vs for our Master , him onely wee acknowledge , without asking leaue of the Pope . Surely as this Heroique speech of the Consul , shewed the Christianlike courage of the man , in attributing due obedience to his lawfull Soueraigne , and may to future ages be a testimony of innocency protested , and in meere loue and admiration of vertue : so without question this noble and worthy Emperour deserued no lesse , if the whole impartiall world were to returne a Iury vpon the passage of his intire life : being doubtlesse an honest man , vnspotted , studious of his countries freedome , and onely a seuere opugner of the Romish tyranny : so far foorth , that without exception , he is to be remembred with all those stiles of Honor , which are accustomed to be instiled vpon those , who for the loue of their countries , haue refused to vndergoe no difficult perills . ❧ Charles the fourth . He raigned in the yeere 1346. About the twentieth yeare of Edward the third . LEWES being dead , Charles after he had by diuerse meanes appeased the competitors opposed against him by the electors of Mogunce , the Palatine , the Saxon , and the Brandeburgean , is at last vpon promise that he should procure absolution for the free Cities ( yet standing excommunicated for their adherence vnto Lewes ) crowned Emperor , and on his iourny towards Italie ; but there entertained with more disgrace , then any of his predecessors . For as on foot he entred the City , Behold ( quoth a certaine Senator ) in his Oration before the people in the Capitol ) thy King commeth towards thee in great humility ; very bitterly taunting him with scoffes and reuilements . Insomuch that the Cardinall of Hostia , sent from Auignion by Innocent the sixt , would not condiscend to Crowne him , before he had giuen security to remaine in Rome nor in Italy , no longer then the businesse imported . How base and ignominious this limitation was to the Honour of the Empire , is apparantly to be discerned by the Epistles of Francis Petrarch , ( that most learned and eloquent Poet ) written vnto Charles himselfe in these wordes . I knowe not what this promise made and sworne to the Romane Bishop meaneth , as if your Maiesties entrance into the Citie , had beene gaine-said by some inexpugnable trench , or impassable mountaine : what manner of pride is this , that the Romane Prince , the life and fountaine of liberty , should himselfe be depriued of liberty ; so farre forth , that he who ought to be Lord of all , can not be said to be Lord of himselfe ? And in another place , Nerio of Friuli , in his writings , doth not much dissent . All superiority is impacient of corriualty : whereof , if antiquity can not giue vs presidents , I feare that late examples will make the case frequent . For now ( as fame goeth ) the Pope of Rome hath forbidden the Romane Prince , Rome : whom hee not onely suffereth , but also commandeth , to be contented with the diadem , and sole title of the Romane Empire . Him , whom he suffereth to be Emperour , at no hand will he suffer to enioy Emperie . As the cowardize of Charles , in dissembling his greeuances against this propagating pride of the prelacie , is with iust cause to be complained of . No lesse are the Popes worthy of eternall reprehension , who for their proper respects in deposing of good & godly Emperors , substituted in their places such Ministers whose mindes they knew were alwaies prepared to satisfie their behests by warre and bloud-shed , most wickedly & feloniously imposing vpon the Empire those losses and disgraces , wherewith at this day wee see it weakned and generally taxed . For surely this Charles , to inable his proiects to appease his Competitors ; to dispose of the reuenues of the Crowne at his pleasure ; and freely to bestow them where he thought good , gaue vnto Gunther Earle of Swatzburg , a valiant and warlike Leader , and by the Electors saluted for Emperor 22. thousand markes of siluer , with two Imperiall Cities in Thuringe for the terme of his life . Vnto Frederick Marques of Misnia , elected in stead of Schwatzburge deceased , he gaue ten thousand marks , to resigne his nomination ; and then prepared for his iourney towards Rome . From whence escaping , by an excuse of going on hunting , in as dishonorable a manner , as neuer any of his predecessors before , hee returned to Millan , and there created the Visconti ( a Potent family in that Citie ) in receit of a wonderfull masse of mony , perpetuall Vicars of the Empire throughout Lombardy , to the euerlasting dishonor and preiudice of Germanie . For a sumptuous banquet in Ville-noue neere Auignion , hee re-deliuered to the King of France , the Kingdome of Arles , acquired to the Empire by Otho the first . From Gerlace , Archbishop of Mogunce , though by his partiality hee gained his election , hee wrested the priuiledge of inaugurating the King of Bohemia , in right belonging to the Church of Mogunce , and by cōfirmation of Clement the sixt , inuested it in the Archbishop of Prage . He ordained by law , that none but Bohemians should be admitted into the Colledge of the Canons regular of Inglehame , being of the Dioces of Mogunce . And presently after to make quick and profitable returnes of the profits of the Empire , hee retailed vnto the adioyning Princes sixteene free Cities of Sweuia , all held of the Crowne . To Cunon Archbishop of Treuers , he pawned Bopardia and Wesel ( Imperiall Cities ) by statute . Lusatia , which time out of minde , had beene held in fee of the Imperiall diademe by the Archbishops of Magdeburg , by the corruption of the then Incumbent , he perpetuated vnto the kingdome of Bohemia . Against the fundamentall Lawes of the Country , and the custome of Antiquity , by nouell and subordinate practise , he offered euery Elector ( a part ) one hundred thousand Duckets to nominate for his successor , his sonne Winceslaus , a man giuen ouer to idlenesse , cowardize , luxurie , all wantonnesse and belly-cheere . For which , when this Phocas had not wherewith to keepe his dayes of payment , he morgaged for one hundred thousand duckets , to some their Imposts , and to the Palatine ( as memory recordeth ) Caesarea Luthrea , Oppenham , Odenham , and Ingelham . Whereupon I may be bold to say , that by these diminutions , alienations , and mortgages , the Honourable entrados of the Crowne were so immeasurably wasted , that from that day to this , it hath not beene of power to recouer or restore this terrible downefall . For by the sale of these Imposts ( the true and essentiall Patrimonie of the Crowne ) the glorious Eagle hath beene so deplumed , that euer since shee hath beene but a scorne and contemptible to euery other liuing creatures . Which being true ( as true it is ) what Patriot can but accurse the Romane Bishops , as the sole and prime-authors of all these mischiefes , the children of desolation , and the perpetuall disturbers of all Christian welfare ? ❧ Wenceslaus the Coward . He raigned Anno Christ. 1379. about the second yeare of Richard the second . AFter the demise of Charles , Wenceslaus his sonne , during the schisme betwixt Vrban the sixt , and Clement the seuenth ( then the which a more fatall , bestial , durable dissention neuer befell the Church ) gouerned the Empire , and tooke part with Vrban . To Clement vpon occasion he sendeth his Embassadours ; and amongst them , are remembred certaine honest and indifferent Prelates to haue passed , whom by exquisite tortures he slew most barbarously . And as for Vrban , for that the couetous King had deceiued the more couetous Romanes , gaping after the treasure raised vpon ecclesiasticall benefices , in not keeping promise with his personall presence , after hee had granted his commission for leuying the saide ecclesiasticall tribute through the whole Empire , towards the defrayment of his charges for his Romane-iourney , he became vtterly alienated from his auncient friendship . But what Death preuented by the death of Vrban his successour , Boneface the ninth being sure to haue had it , if God had giuen life , made good in highest measure . For he approouing the censure of deiection against Wenceslaus , not so much for his euil and degenerate life , as for that he had beguiled the Romans of their pence , ratified and aduanced the Election of Rupert Earle Palatine , preferred vnto the Empire by the Bishops of Mogunce , Golen , and Treuers . ❧ Rupertus Caesar . He raigned . 1400. AS Boneface the ninth , in despight of Wenceslaus , with great facility and readinesse approued his deposition : so Rupert but now aloft in highest fauour of the Pope , at this present is so counterchecked by this wether-cocke , Alexander the fift , the third from Boneface ( a most malicious Cretusian ) that he is very likely to feele the smart of as violent a diuision in the state , as doth the Church in a present and terrible schisme . For vpon his very installment at Pisa in the Fishers chaire without any regard either of Ruperts right , or his present possessiō vpon a iust title , he nominateth by his missiues for King of Romanes , Wenceslaus , the man , whom in a frequent assembly , with one consent the Electors had heretofore remooued from imperiall gouernement . Which Indignity Rupert not being able to disgest , hee made his grieuous complaints thereof vnto the Lords of the state ; and exceedingly interrupted the obedience of the Church throughout the Empire . And without doubt , he had attempted far greater reformations , had not the sparkles of these smoking substances together with the Prelate , to the general good of Christendom been at one extincted by the Physick of Marsilius a physitian of Parma . And Rupert applying his labours to redresse what had been amisse by the auarice of Charles , and the cowardize of Winceslaus , in the tenth yeere of his raigne departed this world . In whose place succeeded Sigismund , a Prince for his wisedom , learning and integrity , most renowned . ❧ Sigismund . He raigned 1411. About the twelfth yeere of Henry the fourth . SIGISMVND at his entrance vpon the Imperiall Diadem , finding the Romane Sea miserably distracted by the wicked schisme of three Antipopes ( Iohn the foure and twentieth at Bononia , Gregory the twelfth at Ariminum , and Benedict the 12. in Spaine ) tooke such infinit paines to restore it vnto its pristinate beauty , as few or none of the auncient kings or Emperors euer vndertook the like , for the welfare of the Church . For albeit of his owne authoritie diuested vpon himselfe , and diuolued from his Ancestors , he might , & ought to haue cast out these boute-feaus of diuision ; yet made he choice in modesty and truenesse of Christian piety , rather to redresse these euils by a Generall Councel , then by the violent meanes of war and blood-shed . Which to effect , to his extreame trauaile , danger and expences , he visited almost all the realmes of Christendome , France , Spaine , and England , and there by his godlinesse and good counsell so wrought with the Princes of those kingdomes , that they commended his zeale , allowed his course , and promised their best assistance . This done , he tooke his iourny towards Italy , and dealt with Iohn at Mantua , to come vnto the Councel at Constance . The Assembly being set , such were his feeling perswasiues , such his important motiues , as the three Antipopes being condemned to deposition , hee caused Otho of Colonna , a Roman patrician , by the name of Martin the fift , to be preferred to the place by the generall suffrage of all the nations there assembled . Yea , and to remoue all impediments from retardation of the peace , he suffered Iohn Husse and Ierome of Prage , men of exquisit learning and singular piety , to be condemned and burned , against an oath of safe-conducte publiquely allowed them . But now , let vs go by examination to learne what thankes this godly , zealous , honourable and Christian Emperour receiued at the hands of this Holy-seeming Sea , for these their so infinite benefits . Vpon which I will not stand to exemplifie , for that euery weake braine can conceiue , what are the blessings of peace , what the fruites of a quieted conscience , what the rewardes of vnity in religion . But surely their retributions were such , as would absolutely dishearten any wise man , to inable such ingratefull Canonists by benefits . Yet will wee take so much paine , as to decipher them to our Reader . No long time after ( Eugenius the fourth , then Poping it in Venice ) the Emperour tooke occasion to go into Italie to receiue his Inauguration : where by the way it happened that he countenanced somewhat aboue ordinary , Philip Duke of Millan , at that instant warring against the Venetians and Florentines . They partly fearing , and partly imagining , that their wills were halfe obtayned , if they might worke the Pope to their fashion , aduentured , and without opposall gained his Fatherhoods good will , to deny the Emperor his lawfull request ; and more , adioyned his forces , to make good the passage of Aruo about Syenna against his Maiesties people . This , you must at any hand remember , was the Popes requitall , this their vsuall remunerations , not vnfitly beseeming their double dealing consciences . Yet departed his Maiesty not vncrowned , but obserue I beseech you , by what practises , by what cunning sleights they proceeded in their state-House . Extraordinary Intercession must be made ; Six months he must stay at Siena , to his infinit expence ; who gained by that ? And at last , must he leaue Rome , doubt you not , but to Eugenius his high content . And againe , this Neronian bloud-thirsting Bishop , som short time after being deposed , for going about to frustrate the decree of the Councel of Constance ( wherby it was inacted that euery seuenth yeare the Bishops should celebrate a Generall Councell ) and to ratifie That of Basil , which Martin had summoned , and himselfe authorized ; in the daies of Frederick the third , he set all Austria , on a miserable , woful & lamētable cōbustion , by prouoking Lewes the sonne of Charles king of France , then called the Daulphin , to infest Germany with warre , fire , & famine . For this Prince , at the pleasure of Eugenius , endeuoring to make void the Councel of Basil , with his Armeniachs and souldiers , by cunning , treason , & protestations , possessed himselfe of all the plaine Country , yea , and of some Cities of Alsatia , miserably wasting that goodly Prouince , the most fertil mother of grain & wine . That done , he fell to burning the villages , the Mannors & Mansions of citizens , of orphanes and widowes , and therein spared neither Gods Churches nor Monasteries . Hauing put period to wast , but not to cruelty , he returned to Basil with 30. thousand Cumbatants , where by the valiancy of three thousand Heluetians , charging for their Country , hee was finally slaine , the third part of his lame & maymed Army , scant returning with life into France . Such be the successe of all papal entertainment . ❧ Frederick the third . Hee raigned Anno 1440. about the eighteenth yeare of Henry the sixth . ALbert succeeded Sigismund ; but hee departing this world within two yeares after his election , the Imperiall diaceme diuolued vpon Frederick of Austria ; who being by nature a Prince of a clement , milde & peaceable disposition , set diligent watch and warde ouer his thoughts , his words , and his actions , not at all to offend these hereditarie disturbers of peace , and perpetuall manaclers of Princes . Yet could hee not fully auoid their crossings , abate their pride , nor escape their plots . For as in a publique Parliament held at Mogunce , he did what he could to corroborat the councell of Basil , held in the yeare of our Lord 1441. which the Pope laboured tooth and naile to disanul ; as also , to diminish the exactions which by Popish iniunctions were leuied vpon the German Churches ; which to effect , by his letters , hee desired the king of France either to assist in person , or by some eminent persons of his Kingdome : So the Pope , to countermine against this lawfull battery of publique triall ( for these can no more abide it , then Owles can light ) tampereth with the French , neither to goe himselfe , nor to suffer any other ( without his priuity ) to appeare as his Deputie . Here behold one Popish tricke more for the present to frustrate the intended reformation of a noble & vertuous Emperour . And heereupon followed that wofull Alsatian de-population , whereof wee tolde you but now ; There is an other tricke complotted , to busie his head with-all , viz. Diuersion . His owne house is on fire , how can hee then attend the quenching of his neighbours ? And albeit , that hee outliued three successiue Bishops , & during their liues , caried himself so modestly and benignly towards them , that nothing was attempted by them against his Dignity ; & yet hoped for greater contentments by the rising of Pius the second to the Papacie , his auncient seruant and Minister : Notwithstanding , this his trusty friend being once seated , without acquainting the Emperour , made no scruple to accurse his kinsman , Sigismund Archduke of Austria , and to entangle Germanie with intestine diuisions . As thus . Sigismund , after long controuersying , and nothing preuailing , being vnwilling that the people vnder his tuition , should still stand exposed to the depraedations of the Romanists , in a bickering of Horse-men , chanced to take prisoner , and imprisoned , Nicholas Cusanus , by the Pope sent into Tirol , to ransack the Bishoprick of Brixia : The Bishop censuring him at no lesse a crime then high treason , committed against one of his creatures , enioyneth him greeuous punishments , from which his trustinesse could not be wooed to absolue him , no not at the intercession of Caesar , vntill Pluto himselfe came a messenger to release him from his papall obstinacie . His owne Creatures report , that neither the threats , nor the intreaties of Princes or communalties could any whit terrifie him , but in extreame and insatiable prowling for mony , he was ready to accurse and prosecute with warre , as many as any way offered to gainsay his intendments . Theodorick Erbach , Archbishop of Mogunce being dead , Diether Erusburg was preferred to his place . This man , for that Annats and first fruites had beene abolished and condemned in the Councel of Basil , refused to pay to Saint Peter for bestowing the Pall vpon him , those twenty thousand , sixe hundred and fifty duckets of the Rhene , which his Holinesse by prescription adiudged to be due vnto him . Pius was not a little moued at the refusall ; denieth him confirmation , and bestowed the Incumbencie vpon Adolph of Nassau ( not for loue towards the one belieue it , nor for especiall desert in the other ) but for that hee was honourably allied , and able by friends to become master of the possession . Diether valiantly resisteth his Deiection , & amongst many others , by large and bountifull entertainment draweth Henry the Palatine , and Frederick of Bamberg , to take part in his quarrell : All Germanie is vp in faction , and the principall personages therein ingaged , to their notable losse and consumption . For , Charles Marques of Baden , George Bishop of Meten , & Vlrich Earle of Wittemberg , of the faction of Adolph , in a notable incounter neere Sechenham , are rowted , slaine , captiuated , and imprisoned in the Castle of Heydelberge . From whence they could not be deliuered , before that Baden had payed one hundred thousand Florins ; Meten forty fiue thousand , and Wittemberg as many , as the Marques . And for further gratuity , they were faine either to add , or to release to the Palatine , other royalties of equall value vnto their ransomes . At this misfortune of his friends , who maketh any doubt , but that Pius was exceedingly agreeued ? whervpon , as the brused viper , hee addresseth his querimonious letters vnto Philip Duke of Burgundy , concerning the miserable estate of his partakers ; a Prince as truly wise , as valiant in armes . Him hee nominateth Captaine of the Warre , and intreateth his assistance against the Palatine , Diether , the Earle of Catzenelboge , and their adherents . But Philip in his high wisedom , either misliking the burthē of this war , or by the temporizing awkwardnes of the Pope too-long deferring his resolue ; meane while , by the treason of two Citizens , Mogunce was surprised by Scaludo in the night & by Lodowic Niger Palatin , the Earle of Vold , and other of their complices in the behalfe of Adolph . Who put it to sack , and fire ; slew fiue hundred of the Citizens , and reduced it into perpetuall seruitude . So that this noble Diocesse , what by the sales , the alienations , and the mortgages , of the dorps , villages and burroughs , euen to this very day feeleth , and smarteth for the outrages of this papall warre . This was one of Pius his good deeds ; Rather then his auaricious Cofers would forbeare to in-exhaust Germanie of her treasure , hee cared not into what distresses he cast the Princes , the people , and the Cities of the kingdom . But as this second Impius dealt with the Princes ; So did his successor , a Venetian , Paulus the second ( and worse ) with his Maiesty . For after the taking of Constantinople , Frederick made his second iourny to Rome , on purpose to deliberate with Paul about an expedition against the Turks , To the accelerating wherof , for that the Princes through their mutuall discontents were much deiected in courage , he praied his Holinesse in person to beare him company into Germanie . But the Bishop putting off the motion with Courtship and kind protestations , notwithstanding laid wait for his life . Which he by his prouidence declining , and in future resoluing , to take precise notice of Popish trecheries , first couragiously opposed in the Parliament at Noremberg against the Legats of Innocent , deputed through Germany to collect his Holinesses dismes , but dispatched them away againe to Rome as penilesse , as from thence they departed . What man liueth so void of proficiency , that reading these Legends , will hereafter beleeue this traiterous society ; sithence such worthy Emperours , such wise Princes , and such great Potentates , could neither by their owne prouidences , nor the prudencie of their counsels , prescribe themselues an assured meanes , to be fully acquited from their ouer-reaching inuentions ? ❧ Maximilian the first . Hee raigned 1494. About the ninth yeere of Henry the seuenth . AFter the decease of Frederick , Maximilian being by the generall suffrage of the Electors in the life time of his Father chosen for his Consort in the Empire , was now acknowledged for Emperor . Who although with ease hee might haue purchased the accustomed solemnities of Caesar , yet beeing a Prince most deepely in-seene into worldly practises ; without question , vpon recordation of such inconueniences , which hee obserued formerlie to haue fallen vppon the preceding Emperours , ( allured vnto Rome , by the glittering reflex of a golden Crowne ) hee set himselfe downe , and quoted it in his Tables ; That the presence of the Popes were euer to bee auoided , an infallible presage of ensuing aduersity to the Roman Emperors . Notwithstanding his wariest sinceritie could not at all times auoide their wickedest cousenages . For in the very infancie of his installement , that most luxurious and couetous Tyrant Alexander the sixt , for mony , to the eternall reproch of the Christian name , sold Zezimus heire of Turky , expulsed by his brother Baiazet , aliue and dead within the space of one day . In like thirst of treasure , receiued from the French , he ratified the Rape of Anne of Britaine , before espoused by Proxie vnto Maximilian . The solemnized and consummated mariage of the daughter of the said Emperor with Charles of France , he dissolued against the will , intreaty , and reall commandement of Caesar her father . By Cardinall Raymond he pillaged the chiefest Prouinces of Germany with nouell and vnheard off deuises of exaction . By that irregular and incomprehensible power of the keies , for many yeeres to come he gaue pardons to all rich-soules departed . After him , as second in name , so second in Papacie , Iulio circumuented this Emperor with as fine fetches , as did any of his predecessors the former Caesars . For after he had ingaged his maiesty in the warre of Venice , a warre of all other the most dangerous & troublesom , and that he had forced the best of their Cities to the pinch of necessity : Iulius against his faith , most religiously sworne before the states of the Empire at Augusta ; and against common honesty , not only receiued the Venetians , vpon request of peace , into fauour , but entring with them into League , this most wicked Senacherib turned his armes against his Maiesty . Yelling out a speech rather shewing euident testimony of an Out-lawes humour , then of Peters successor . For by records of memory it is certainly reported , that as he passed from the City by the bridge of Tiber , he threw the keies into the Riuer , exclaiming in fury : Sithence Peters keies will no longer stead vs , welcome Pauls sword . Whereby , if a man would fall to iest , he might well argue , that by this mad tricke he depriued himselfe and his successors of this Clauian Tyranny , claimed from S. Peter , and now transferred to Saint Tiber. Vpon which translation of Iulius his keies , one hath plaied no lesse truly , then wittely in these verses . He that for many Ages long hath sate In Peters chaire , new doctrine doth inuent , For sinfull Soules he prayes not : but at that , Which peacefull Peter him to follow ment , He iests : Loues armes and bloody streames of warre , Paul is his Saint , Peter inferiour farre . Paul hath a sword , but smites not : He not so , For many soules haue died with his blow . A cruell Out-law sprung from poyso'nd woomb , And neither followes Christ , nor Peters doome . But our great and eternall God , the iust reuenger of iniquity , suffered not this his neuer-before-heard-of periury to die vnreuenged . For at what time Lewes king of France , according to the Conuentions of the League with Caesar , persecuted his Holinesse , so far ouergone in pride through the assistance of the Venetians , as hee doubted not to scorne all conditions of peace ; yet after the battell of Rauenna , such was the disastrous fortune of him and his , that the peace , which but euen now , hee scorned , now hee humbly seeketh , to his cost experimenting that for all his iesting , Peters keyes at a pinch did him more seruice , then many thousands of Pauls swords . After this ouerthrow , and some other crosses , hee died , and left Leo the tenth , his successour , as well in seat as in trecherous disposition . For in the beginning of his pontificie , estranging himselfe from the French King , he adhered to Caesar & Sforza the Millanois , against the French , then in March vpon an inuasion against Millan . Vpon the slaughter of the Heluetians at Marignan , Frederick and Sforza being reduced into order , he violated his league with Maximilian , and returned againe to the friendship of Francis. Vnto whom , after he had obtained a Graunt , that the pragmaticall Sanction should be abolished in France , and a new inserted , hee conserred the titles of the Constantinopolitan Empire . In this donation , whether should a Christian more admire his preposterous liberality , in giuing away an other mans right , or abhorre his trecherie in doing his vtmost , to crosse Maximilian , so well-deseruing an Emperor ? But Caesar finding himselfe deceiued ( whether in this confrontment , or in some other , I am not able to say ) is reported to haue said in Dutch : That hee could well auow , that none of the Popes had kept faith with him : And that Leo should be the last of that ranke , vnto whom hee would giue credit . And that hee said so , and did so , the sequel proued . For within a few yeares after falling into a laske , he yeelded vp his ghost , in the yeare of Saluation 1519. By whom , by the pleasure of almighty God , it might haue come to passe , that hee , who had beene so often illuded by Popish practises , might haue taken some course in so great an alteration and blessed reformation of religion , to haue begun primitiue restauration to their finall destruction . But being preuented by immature death , what was in his minde , he bequeathed to be executed , by the potencie of his liuing successor Charles , his brothers sonne . ❧ Charles the fift . He raigned Anno 1519. about the eleuenth yeare of Henry the eighth . BVt what Penne , as it ought , in suting ornament , is able to delineat to life , the treacheries which from time to time these Patrons of confusion bounded out against this Charles , this potent and thrice honorable Emperour ? In so wonderfull an alteration of religion , such as since the corruption of the Primitiue , neuer befell the Christian world , who can but wonder at the daring presumption of the Popes , in prouoking so happy and so worthy a Potentate ? who , taking into notice his singular affection in defending and vpholding the Papacie , can chuse but accurse the ingratitude of such desperat persons ? For vpon the decease of Maximilian , the Electors being assembled at Frankfort , Charles and Francis king of France , became competitors for the diademe . Leo the tenth , being in bonds of strict friendship with Francis , and according to the innated humours of the Church , hauing receiued his fee , fauoured and pleaded his best plea in barre of Charles , to the preferment of his bountifull client Francis. His cautions consisted of three principles ; the first imported a consideratiue feare of his Greatnes , being by inheritance a Prince indowed with many spacious and wealthy Kingdomes . The second , was taken from his peculiar and figure-casting imagination ; In that , forsooth , this Charles by no obscure and lineamentall predictions of face and disposition , should resemble the man , fore-told in certaine verses of an auncient Prophet ; Who arising in the North , should be the motiue of greeuous alterations to fall vpon all Italy , but especially vpon the Romish sea : The third from pretence of equity , by letters signified vnto the Lords of the Election ; That it stoode not with Law for Charles to aspire vnto the Empire ; for that the Kings of Naples were the Churches Liege-men , and time out of minde by oath had capitulated with the Bishops , neuer to affect the Romane Empire , but to rest contented with their inheritances . But by the integrity of Frederick Duke of Saxonie , in manifestation of his loyalty towards Maximilian his deceased Master , vnto whom all his life time hee stood most deuoted ; Charles preuailed . Leo now turning Vulpes , followes the streame ; for the present , cleanly falleth off from the French : And finding Grace to attend Charles ; there courts he ; and thether hee dispatcheth his Commendatorie miseries . Charles requireth his Amen to the Election ; as also his dispensation , to retaine with the Empire the Kingdome of Naples , the Law of Inuestiture in no point gaine-saying it . But giue a Pope leaue , I pray you , to fly to his wits , he must , and doth plot out new deuises , to impeach the Greatnes of Charles . Hee sendeth his Breues and messengers throughout Germanie , to forbid the Diet at Wormes : of purpose to put off his Coronation at Aquisgran . But when his pontifical improbity perceiued his positiue diuersions to be illuded ; and the resolution of the Electors to be such , as could not be daunted in their proceedings by force , feare , flattery , nor threats , hee then fell againe , to the renuing of his league , with the late-forsaken French : Amongst other Articles inserting this for one ; That , both the Sicils should be taken from Charles ; That the gouernment of Italie should be altered , and the protection of the Cities shared , betweene the French and his Holines . Now the question is , for how long time this Combination stood immutable : so long doubt you not , as it stood with the welfare of Leo , and the aduantage of his sea . And this is an especial note , to be alwaies obserued through the whole discourse of these liues . For , as soone as the French King , vpon confidence of this Popish League , had broken with Caesar , & sent Robert de la March , Charles his rebel , to infest Netherland ; yea , and his men of warre into Italy , to assay the surprise of Rhegium , a towne late belonging to the Church ; Leo fearing the potencie of the French , and calling their fidelities into suspect : to make sure work for the maintenance of his owne stake , and to reduce a restitution to the Church of those townes which the French had vsurped ; Now againe the third time hee followeth the Fortunes of Caesar : Desiring of his Maiesty ( after his most courteous reception ) that Parma & Placentia might be restored to the Church ; Francis Sforza to the Dutchy of Millan ; the French expulsed Italy , and the Papacy being setled in a peaceable estate , might thenceforth be secured from all feare of the French. But Paul dying ; By the succession of Adrian the sixt , a Germane borne , the Papall Anger for a while lay silenced . For during the short time of his Papacy , As a good schoolemaster , hee persisted constant in good will towards Caesar ; And against the French , he assisted him with treasure , and conioyned him in league with the Florentines , the Siennois , the Luquois , the Roytelets of Italy , the Apostolique sea , with Henry of England , and Lewes of Hungary . But Adrian in the second yeere of his Papacy being departed , not without suspition of poyson , the fatall practises of the Bishops by so much the more eagernesse outflamed , by how much they had gathered materialls to worke vpon , during the time of the former respiration . For Iulius of Medices , otherwise Clement the seuenth , after much wrangling being elected Pope , before his installation was , no man more , esteemed of Caesar . From the Church of Toledo , by his bounty he receiued an annuity of ten thousand duckats . He reconciled him so throughly into the fauour of Adrian , from whence he was fallen , that in all affaires of importance , Adrian made him only of his counsell . But no sooner Pope , no sooner traitor . Against his Lord hee complotteth league vpon league , discharging his bills of account with acquittances of this nature . For Francis the French king being in Italy , and after the taking of Millan dispersing his forces throughout Lombardy , Clement worketh the dis-union of the Hadrian confederacy , and forbiddeth the Florentins , the Syennois and the Luccois to pay the money , which by the conuention they ought to haue sent vnto Caesar . By Albert Pius Prince of Carpi , he concluded a Clandestine league with king Francis , meane time cunningly treating with the Imperialists by way of sequestration and Indifferency to impledge the territory of Millan into his discretion . But the deuise being vtterly disliked , and fortune against all imagination so crossing his designements , that in a memorable defeature , Francis was taken prisoner at Paruie , and carried captiue into Spaine ; then to his perpetuall reproch of leuity and inconstancy ( to flater with Caesar ) he parted with an infinit masse of mony for his souldiers arrerages : yet during these passages in iealouzy , that Charles would turne his thoughts to the conquest of Millan , which of all his Italian pretendācies was only left vnconquered , he goeth to counsel with Loyesse the Queen mother , Henry king of England , the Venetians and some other Potentates , how to expulse the Imperialists out of Italie , and redeeme Francis . To set forward the execution whereof , he dealeth with Ferdinand Dauila , a man of eminent place & souldiery in Caesars Campe : assaieth to draw him to the party , and for a bait offereth him the title of the kingdom of Naples . Dauila being of a subtill & close disposition , accepteth , learneth the secrets of the enemies proiects , and acquainteth his master therewith . Caesar laugheth at the mans periury ; who being the principall architect of all iniurious & preiudiciall proceedings against him , had notwithstanding himselfe made his enemy priuy to counsels , giuen him very serious cautions in future , how to proceede in his affaires , and how to prouide for his owne security , with an intimation to become carefull to bind the loyalties of his men of warre with greater deuotion to his seruice . Wherby finding himselfe ouer-reacht by Dauila , he giueth not ouer , but trieth another way to the wood : And thus it was : Francis being set at liberty by Caesar , and vnwilling to make good these conuentions , wherunto by the treaty of Madril he stood obliged ; he takes hold of the occasion , absolueth him of his oath ; confederateth anew with the French and some others , and proclaimeth the confederacy by the name of the Most holy League . Inserting amongst the Articles , that Caesar also might be cōprehended therin , So that , he would first re-deliuer vpon a competent ransome the children of France , as yet in hostage for their father : restore Millan to Sforza , and enter Italie for his Coronation with no greater troops , then should seeme requisite to the discretions of the Pope and the Venetians . What indifferent Reader , weighing the originall of this league , the time wherein it was concluded : and the occasions wherupon it was broched , can make any other construction to his vprightest censure , but that his Holinesse had small intention by these iniurious breaches of concluded articles , to further the publique peace , but rather to administer matter of implacable heart-burnings and assured wars between the Princes . For by one Apostaticall Breue , first , the conditions of the peace are prescribed to so high and mighty an Emperor , by his subiect and Vassall Sforza of Milan : secondly , the oath of the French King duely and solemnly taken , is pardoned and frustrated : thirdly Caesar is commanded to re-deliuer the children of France , as if it were not enough by the releasement of the fathers oath , to be once deluded . Fourthly , He is commanded , not to winke at , but to perpetuate the tyranny of the Italian Kinglings . Fiftly , he is commanded to forbeare to come vnto Italy , vnlesse he proportioned his troops to the shape of the Papal and Venetian limitations . Sixtly , He is commanded to giue pardon to Traitors : and for conclusion , in case of not-performance , warre is denounced by sea and by land . Amidst which dishonorable limitations , what could Caesar doe , but in true acknowledgement of the vprightnes of his cause , reiect these base conditions with as great courage on the one side , as they were insolently propounded by the other , reposing more hope in his innocency , then in the multitude of Horse or shipping ? And surely , God almighty , the vnpartiall Iudge of humane actions , so moderated the execution of his diuine iustice , that whatsoeuer complots this architect of euill counsell , meant to haue throwne downe vpon the head of Caesar , the very same befell his own person , euen when he thought himselfe to stand vpon so sure a ground , as to be an onely Spectator of the ensuing troubles . For Caesar beeing awakened at the Report of so famous a Confederacie , dispatched into Italy the Duke of Burbon & Fronsperg , Captaines of admirable reputation for their cariage in the last warres ; with warrant to defend Naples , now by the tenor of the league giuen in prey to warre and dis-vnion . These Leaders pretending , as if they meant to passe by Florence , now growen proud by the continuance of peace , their mighty Citizen the Pope , and the late league ; at last bending their course by the mountaines and rocks , vpon the sixt day of May , they solemnly entred Rome : droue Clement into the Bastil of Adrian ; and vpon want of all necessaries ( his Bulls , his Breues and execrations , thicke and threefold breathed out against the Germanes and Spaniards , standing him in no stead ) compelled him to yeeld ; but with so seruile and base conditions , as vpon the like , neuer did Souldier to this day , giue vp his fort . The insolency of the Spaniard , and the inhumanity of the Germane , I am not able in apt words to display . See Guicoiardine , and the Histories of those times . For besides their horrible pillagings , their spoiles , their rauishments , and their wasts , no kinde of scorne was left vnpractised against the Pope & his Cardinals : All without difference were alike made captiues , all alike tortured : He that was rāsomed to day by the Spanish , to morrow was again in durance to the Germans . Caesar writeth his letters to the Pope and the King of England , that all this happened besides his priuity or command ; yea , that he would not acknowledge such transgressors for his souldiers , who durst attempt so wicked a seruice . Yet sticketh hee not to attribute the mishap to the secret iudgements of God , who would not suffer so grosse an indignity concluded against the Maiesty of the sacred Empire , to escape without punishment . Bona verba . The Pope being restored to liberty , maketh shew of great friendship , but in secret worketh him all possible vexation . For either vpon hope to possesse the Kingdome of Naples ( a precise condition in the articles ) or else in desire of reuenge ; he so wrought with the French king to renue the warre , that at his direction Lautrick was sent into Italy , for the conquest thereof . But such was the euent , that Lautrick died ; the pestilence raged through the Camp ; and nothing was effected . Wherupon , the French king for the loue of his children ( as yet captiues in Spaine ) was glad to accept of the proffered conditions . The Bishop , alwaies accustomed to goe with the streame , vpon the peace perfected at Cambray , betweene the Emperour , the French , and the other Princes , enstalleth Charles at Bononia , with the Imperial diadem , and aydeth him in the siege and conquest of Florence ; the people whereof hee saw punished most seuerely . But his Holines had not forgotten to requite Charles with many like courtesies , if God had bestowed longer life vpon him . For within three yeeres after , hee had complotted a league with Francis the French King at Marsellis , to take Millan from Caesar , & to inuade Sauoy ; bestowing his niece Katherin vpon his sonne Henry , if , to the good of the Christian common-wealth , he had not beene by death preuented , and that , not without the suspition of poison , as some suppose . Could a more treacherous man be found liuing then this Clement , who continually being taken into fauour and alliance with Caesar , continually betrayed his faith , and of a dissembling friend , euermore proued a professed enemie . After the decease of Clement , succeeded Alexander Farnesius , otherwise Paul the third , a man almost spent with age , yet of a farre more subtile disposition . For vpon obseruation , that the controuersies in religion did daily more and more augment , and propagate , with singular affection he studied Caesars fauour ; but to no other purpose , then in thirst of the German bloud , to combine his Maiestie and the other Princes , in stricter bonds of perseuerance , to take armes against the Lutherans ; hypocritically giuing out to all persons , and in all places , and that vpon his faith , that hee would speedily assemble the Generall counsell , so often petitioned , and promised to the Germane Nation . And surely so he did , first proclaiming it to be held at Mantua , then at Verona , and lastly after the expiration of many yeares at Trent : but not with any intention to salue the greeuances of the Christian Common-weale , or the distemperature of the Church : but that by holding the Germanes in suspence vpon the finall determinations of the Councel ; meane time he might win time to effectuate his secret resolutions ; viz. the suppression of the truth , and the restitution of Germanie , now through the light of the Gospell beginning to shake off Babilonian tyrannie , to it pristinat captiuity . So in the yeare of our Lord 1546. he celebrateth the Councell at Trent , and maketh all possible faire weather with the Germanes . But with what intent ? surely to combine the nobility , & to instigate his Maiestie to begin the warre against the Protestant Princes , and the Euangelicall Cities . In the beginning whereof , good fortune prognosticated a prosperous progresse vnto Caesar ( by the taking of Iohn Frederick Elector of Saxonie ; the Lantgraue of Hessen ; the confiscating of all Wittembergs estates , and the finacing of many confederat Cities ) yet , in being too officious to giue his Holines content , in keeping his prisoners more strictly then Honour could warrant , and in coyning new articles of religion to the Popes best liking ; such an alteration followed , vpon the rising of Maurice Prince Elector , and Albert of Brandenburg , and other new confederates , that ( dismissing the captiuated Princes , and granting liberty of Conscience through Germanie ) so disaduantageous were his proofes of papall countenance , that he often wished , that he had preferred the loues of the Princes , before the Popes surest alliance . For although ( to confesse truth ) the proceedings of Paul against his Maiestie , were slower and better caried , then those of his predecessors ; in regard that hee was his Champion , to manage bloudy and difficult stratagems against the seruants of God : yet vpon the death of Peter Aloysius duke of Parma & Placentia ( murdered by treason for his tyrannie ) when Ferdinand Gonzaga , Caesars Generall , and Gouernour of Millan , was inuested in his stead : the Pope presently mistrusteth Caesar for an author of the murder ; and in vaine requesting the Restitution of Placentia , he strait starteth from Caesar , and bethinketh himselfe how to ioyne with the French : And had ioyned in deed , if hee had longer liued ; the time offering so fit an opportunity . For now Henry vpon the defeature of the Princes , and the seizing on Placentia ( aboue expectation ) growing into iealousie of the powerfulnesse of Caesar , renueth his league with the Switzers , and strengthneth his party with friends on all hands . But in midst of these reuengefull deuises , this miser dyed , distracted more through griefe and anguish , then any infirmity of Age : the tenth day of Nouember . 1549. After long wrangling in the Conclaue , 1550. Iulius the third is saluted Pope : being before his installment , of the French faction , and after , so giuen ouer to belly-cheere and venery , that he died of a Lethargy , and wanted rather leisure then will to attempt against Caesar . But Paul the fourth a most diuelish Hypocrite , and next succeeding Marcellus the second , ( a Pope also of a few daies standing ) by the packing of the Cardinalls wholly deuoted to the French seruice , was consecrated High Priest : This man during his Cardinalship , was Caesars most malitious enemy : Insomuch that by his prouocation , Paul the third was perswaded to inuade Naples , as an apourtenāt of the Church . But now enioying fuller meanes to worke fuller despights , hee maketh open profession of his late concealed malice , and prosecuteth his followers with indignities of deepest fury . For no sooner was he seated in the Chaire of the scarlet Beast , but he casteth into durance Alexander Farnesius Cardinall of Sanflorian , Camillus Collonna , and Iulianus Caesar with his brother the Archbishop , vpon suspition of a conspiracy complotted against him in fauour of the Imperialists . As many the Seruants and ministers of Caesar , here and there negotiating his affaires through Italy , as he could lay hands on , he seazeth ; and amongst these , Tascis master of the forests to his maiesty , and don Garzia Lassus a Duke of no obscure reputation amongst the Spanish . Marke Anthonie Colonna beeing absent , he citeth to appeare before him within three daies space ; and in default of appearaunce , hee maketh prize of his goods . To Iohn Count of Montorian , he giueth the goods of Ascanius Colonna , together with the titular Earledome of Pallianum . In despight of Caesar he recalleth the Out-lawed gentlemen of Naples , and endoweth them with offices , and publique preheminences . At the instance of Peter Stroza , he fortifieth Pallianum , and prepareth it for the receit of the French to the infesting of Naples . Finally , by sending his kinsman Cardinall Caraffa into France , most impiously he disturbeth the peace concluded in Belgia , betweene his most excellent Maiesty and the French Monarch . And to bee especially carefull , that no one shot of Popish malice should misse his Maiesty , he absolutely denieth his sonne Philip ( vnto whom the father had resigned the administration of all his kingdoms ) the inuestiture of the kingdomes of Naples and Sicil , being held of the Church . Wherupon followed such furious and lamentable wars , managed between these mighty potentates of Christendome , that Italy and France being chiefly ingaged therein , reeked againe in the bloody tragedies of their deerest Citizens . For not Rome only was almost brought vnto those extremities by the presence of the Duke of Alua , which once it suffered in the daies of Clement , and for the present auoided by accepting of these conditions , which the now-somwhat-lenified Lord Generall propounded : but the French also in fauour of the Papacy , being sent into Italy vnder the conduct of the Guise , to infest the peacefull estate of the Latian prouinces , vnderwent the miserable destiny of vnfortunate warfare , in their indeauours to thrust in new forces into the chiefe City of Vermandois , against the squadrons of King Philip , marching out of Belgia to the reliefe of the said place . In which conflict their whole army was routed by the Germane Horse , the Constable , the Rhene-graue , and many noble men taken prisoners , and the City forced . And not long after being masters of Calaies , they suffered a no lesse disasterous defeature in their returne by Graueling at Count Egmonds hands : Termes and Villebon their two most famous leaders beeing taken prisoners , their armie routed , and their people slaine . Now , what vpright conscience can sauour a Religion so insatiate of blood ? or what Christian can thinke that Man , who to perfect his owne respects , careth not what mischiefe he worketh , to be the Vicar of Christ ? Surely , Let them impudently affirme what they list , their workes so perspicuously layde open to meanest capacities , may with sufficiencie assure vs , that through the whole course of their successions , they haue euer rather merited the Sir-names of Saule , then the least title of Paul. And so to the worlds end will they doe , rather then by the redeeming of one Christian soule from spoile and blood shed , they will suffer one Acre of Saint Peters imaginary patrimony , to be wrested from them , if possibility or trecherous pollicy can any way withstand it . ❧ Ferdinand Caesar . Hee raigned 1558. About the fift yeere of Queene Mary . AS soone as Charles had betaken himselfe to a solitarie life in Saint Iustus in Spaine , his brother Ferdinand long before elected King of the Romanes , now by the generall suffrage of the Electors assembled at Frankford , is preferred vnto the Empire . After the ceremonies whereof accomplished , to make manifest his obseruancie towards the Romish Sea , he dispatcheth to his Holinesse Guzman , his chiefe chamberlaine ; to signifie , that his Maiesties pleasure was , vpon oportunity of first-offered-occasion , to request and receiue the imperiall Diadem at his Holinesse Hands . But such was his father-hoods arrogant and froward answer : that it may well argue the Relator , not onely not to be the successor of Peter , who with the residue of the Apostles , reuerenced the authoritie of the higher powers , as the ordinance of God , with due honour and obedience : no , nor a man willing to doe one good turne for another , according to the mutuall lawes of courtesie and humanity : but in truth , that very Antichrist , whom the warrant of Holy writ doth point out , to be the person , who should arrogate to himselfe , to prescribe aboue , and against any thing , that God himselfe hath commanded to be holy and inuiolable . For this irregular Beast , would vppon no reason acknowledge Ferdinand for Emperour ; cauilling that his predecessour Charles , had no ability or capacity to surrender the Empire to no liuing creature , but to the Romish Sea ; Neither that it was lawfull for Ferdinand , to take vppon him the administration of the State , without the approbation thereof . His Maiesties Embassadour hee would at no hand suffer to approach his presence ; but hauing learnt out the tenour of his Embassie , hee propounded vnto the Cardinals and Lawyers certaine questions , neither arising from the rudiments of Gods word , nor enforced from the grounds of Nationall Lawes ; but harried from the deepest Abysse , and there discussed by Lucifer the Prince of malice , pride and falsities . Which , as afterward they were libelled out , and dispersed by the Romanists themselues , you shall here receiue . 1 If Guzman , who auerreth that Hee is sent from his Lord Ferdinand , vnto the most Holy Lord the Pope , ought by Law to speake what Charles the fifth hath done , about the resignation of the Empire to his brother Ferdinand . 2 Which being sufficiently vnderstoode ; whether they , wholy , or in part haue done rightfully and lawfully , sithence the Approbation of the most Holy Lord the Pope , and the Apostolique sea , was not interposed therein . 3 Whether , these difficulties being cleared ; nothing for the present may bee obiected against the person of the most excellent Lord Ferdinand . Whereby , hee may be adiudged incapable of the Imperiall dignity : As the euill education of his sonne the king of Bohem , inclinable to manifest heresie . It beeing promised , that within the Kingdomes subiect to his authority , heresies are tollerated without punishment ; Catholiques are oppressed , Monasteries dissolued , Churches auoided , and the Professours of the Augustane reformation , suffered to conuerse and inhabite promiscuouslie with Romish Catholiques . As also , that Ferdinand himselfe did graunt a conference at Wormes , as touching controuersies in Religion , without the consent and good leaue of the Holy Apostolique Sea. That , Hee bound himselfe by oath in the Dyet of Frankford , to obserue all the Articles confirmed in the fore passed Sessions ; wherein manie damnable and Hereticall opinions were maintained and allowed . That , Hee vsurped the Name of Emperour by his owne Authority . That he suspended the Decree , published against Communicants vnder both kindes ; especially at such a time , wherein seuerest execution was most requisite : That he had falsified his oath , taken vpon his first election of King of Romanes ( wherein he had bound himselfe , to be a defender of the Church , and the Catholique faith ) schismes , heresies , and the Protestant Religion . That he had faulted in many more points of like kind , against his oath , and the Holy Canons . 4 What in like manner were to be determined concerning the persons of many the Princes Electors , who being notoriously knowen to haue forsaken the Romish religion , haue agreed to this Resignation : And how all these mischiefes may be preuented and remedied with the least disturbance and breach of Tranquility to the Christian Common-wealth . These were the points to be questioned by the Cardinals . Now albeit the Method of the Narration doe binde me , to acquaint you with the Resolutions of these Creatures the Cardinals ( for surely I know it is a part of my task to diue into the cunning intendments of these proposed questions : ) Notwithstanding , the incompatible pride of the Romanists ; their tyrannizing ouer all Lawes , and the indignity of such base , wicked , and malicious propositions , doe wholy diuert mee from my intended Method , forcibly compelling me against the Rules of Historie , to walke a long digression from my intended Narration . For which , I beseech thee ( Reader ) pardon and patience . For who vpon mature deliberation of such scruples , knowing the Author by whom they were propounded , can refraine from accursing this so fanatical an ambition of Soueraigntie in a Bishop , accompanied with such horrible impiety & contempt of his euerliuing Masters commandement ? What conscience can but blush at his impudencie , who hauing by Gods permission for our manifold sinnes tyranized ouer the Church of Christ for so many yeares , would yet at this day , in despight of light and truth , reduce Kings and Princes into the auncient estate of their Babilonical seruitude ? Not once looking back vpon such like narrations as these , ( taken out from their owne Records ) to consider , how their predecessors to work their wils vpon mighty Potentates ( for hic Aquila non captat muscas , & quicquid delirant Reges , plectuntur Achiui . ) haue made no more conscience by secret and cunning practises , to imbrue the whole Christian world in bloud and desolation ; then a Turkish Generall by falsifying his faith , hath done against conquered Christians . Yea , I dare auow , ( for experientia optima magistra ) that by hooke or crooke , at this day they would as eagerly follow their Canonical presidents , to restore their Entrados ( hinc illae Lachrimae ) as euer did any of their Luciferian predecessors . Were it not , but that they apprehend , how the Turkish forces , first by land affront the Empire from the Carpathie Mountaines to the Ardiatique : Secondly by sea , how at diuers times , but especially in the yeare of our Lord 1534. Barbarussa so scoured alongst the coast of Italy , that if he had descended a little lower to Ostia , actum esset de Roma . His Holinesse must haue resorted to auncient deuises , viz. peraduenture haue sought a new Auignion in Thule or China , whether his Iesuites are already imployed to prepare his way . But this is not all the feare , wherewith these mercilesse fellowes haue terrified his holy wisedome . For the world doth know , that for a whole Winter they haue set footing in Italy , and wasted Friuli . Which to preuent , by the best meanes , wherewith God hath truely inabled him , and the residue of the Christian Princes , if they be not prouident , I can but pray , that his diuine Maiesty would be pleased , to resume the welfare of his people into his owne protection . And so to the Response of the Cardinals . Who confessing the weightinesse of the questions to be such , as partly in regard of the nouelty , partly in regard of the qualitie of the persons , and lastlie in regard of the trouble of the times , and the power of the infidell enemy , they ought to be examined in a full counsell of the choicest and discreetest wisedomes ; yet either in wayward affectation to preserue the Papall Authority , or in feare of his bestiall furiousnesse , malitiously powred out on all sorts without difference ; they returned an answer rather testifying some such imagination , then any way sauouring of truth or integrity . And thus it was . That , it ought to bee prooued by publique Euidence , whether it appeared , that the Empire became voide by Charles his Resignation , or by some other meanes . That , it ought to be sifted how Ferdinand could pretend to succeed : meane time that his Embassador sent to Proxy his obedience , or to negotiate any other publique Act , ought not to be admitted . That all things treated of and ratified at Frankford concerning Ferdinands election , were voide , frustrate and of no effect , for that the Scepter of the Apostolike Sea ( vnto whome at first the keies of all heauenly and earthly power were giuen ) was not first mediated . That those worthy personages who were assisting and tainted of hereticall impiety , had forfeited all the rites and prerogatiues , of old granted them , concerning the election of Emperors . As touching the points obiected against his Maiesty in the third article : That it was of greatest consequence ; and had need of penance : which being performed , his Holinesse was to proceed according to fatherlie clemency . Whereupon a Procurator was to be sent from his Popishnesse , to renounce all the sanctions and decrees ratified at Frankford . After publication whereof , and the Empire now voide , a new mandat might bee made to petition Confirmation , for that it is apparant , that by virtue of the Election , adioyned to Clement his Confirmation , Ferdinand ought to succeede in the Empire . As concerning the impediment procured by his owne default , and somewhat hindering him ; It ought to bee put to Examination : That after absolution obtained , obedience performed , and the auncient oath of fidelity administred , he may fully enioy the confirmation of the Apostolique Court. Whose only and peculiar propertie it is , to wide open its Armes , louingly and halfe way ( as it were ) to imbrace euerie liuing soule comming to be receiued vpon repentance , and flying thereunto with a liuelie faith . O you Romanists ! here let mee aske you , which of you dare presume to say , that hee is more holie , or more religious , then Ferdinand ? What is his sinne so greatly to bee repented of ? What manner of repentance is that , which you so much desire ? or how . shall he hope to speede , if hee stand to your wauering and dispensatorie discretions ? Here is no fault committed against God : his word doth warrant his proceedings . The fundamental lawes of the Empire do auouch that an Emperor being chosen by al the Electors , or the more part of them , vpon the very election , without approbation of Pope , or any other forraine Potentate , is to be receiued for true and indubitate Emperor . Cardinall Cusanus saith : Electores , qui communi consensu omnium Almanorum & aliorum qui imperio subiecti erant , tempore secundi Henrici constituti sunt , radicalem vim habent ab ipso communi omnium consensu , qui sibi naturali iure Imperatorem constituere poterant : non ab ipso Romano Pontifice , in cuius potestate non est , dare cuicunque prouinciae per mundum Regem vel Imperatorem ; ipsa non consentiente . The Electors who were instituted by the common assent of all the Almanes , and others the subiects of the Empire , in the time of Henrie the second : by the said generall consent haue a successiue power , by their municipiall lawes to chuse vnto themselues an Emperour . Without depending vpon the Pope , in whose power it is not , to limit vnto any prouince vnder the cope of heauen , a King or gouernour , without its owne agreement . But admit there were no such law , is not the inauguration of all Princes meerly temporall ? are not the setting on of a Crown , the girding of a sword , and the deliuery of a Scepter , orders meerely ceremoniall ? where are then your interessed claimes ? I will leaue you to your wits , and proceede to your starting-holes of spiritualia ; Which I am sure consist in suffering the people to receiue the blessed Communion vnder both kinds . Here is a sinne vnpardonable . Stay , I beseech you . Did not Paul the third , and he a Pope , send out his Bulls , wherby he gaue all the Bishops throughout Germanie full authority to communicate vnto the people vnder both kinds ? How say ye ? shall his Maiesty be exempted , and they priuiledged ? will you tolerate an order of your owne inacting in euery parish , and not suffer the magistrate to see the same by peace and quietnesse preserued and executed through a whole kingdom ? you know vpon what points of necessity , that Bull was granted , and now rather then you will faile to make odious his sacred Maiesty to the fautours of your passions , you will quarrell him about an act of your owne allowance . Woe vnto you , you Hypocrits , who in words seeme Saints , but in your hearts retaine not a graine of piety . Woe vnto you , who offer your open brests to penitentiaries , but hauing them in your clutches , you teare them in their consciences with more then heathenish foppery . You inioine penance to others , and performe no such matter your selues . Amongst your selues , yee reueale all secrets , and are Iouiall thereat ; but treasons and massacres you conceale , and then your impudent wits must beare you out , ( for your faces will not ) that it was told vnder the vaile of confession . Thus by impostures you liue , you raigne , and deceiue the world , neither caring to enter heauens gates themselues nor suffering others to enter that would . Well , during the Interim of these ponderous machinations against his Maiesty by the college of Cardinalls , Guzman comming to the vnderstanding thereof , day by day hastneth his Audience before his Holinesse . At last after three moneths attendance , and earnest begging ( but not before hee had receiued a more strict commandement from his Master ) either vpon audience to execute his commission , or without delay to returne from Rome , hee is admitted to speake in the presence of seuen Cardinals , from whom hee rereceiueth this aunswere . Forasmuch as his demaund required the most mature deliberation of the Cardinals , and such like persons learned in the Lawes , that , according to his Masters commaund hee might depart at pleasure : meane time his Holinesse would recall the whole matter vnto full examination . Good GOD , what other deliberation could be meant heereby , more then a meere cunning , and dilatorie illusion ? For the matter had beene againe and againe disputed on , and the confirmation so long delayed , in expectation of some disaster , which Time might produce against Caesar , that before any thing was determined , this politique Impostor was taken out of this world . After whom departed vnto the place of eternall blisse this worthy Emperour ; but so , that the confirmation which Clement made litigious , Pius the fourth offered willingly , and Ferdinand reiected as constantly , after the examples of Radulph of Habsburge his progenitor , and Maximilian his Grandfather , contenting himselfe with the orderly election of the German Princes . I haue heard report of as weighty a toleration as this , euen in matters of religion , if as vertuous a Princesse , as any of these afore-named , would haue condiscended to haue accepted the approbation at his Holinesses hand . And as the world now standeth , who doubteth but the Pope would doe much to be reconciled to some Christian Constantines . And therefore to conclude , I hold it not fit to conceale these worthy remembrances of his godlinesse and sincerity ; That in his raigne , in the yeare 1552. the second day of August , an Edict was obtained , whereby peace was graunted to the professors of the Augustan confession . That , in the yeare 1555. that noble Decree followed , wherein it was ordained , that no force , nor offence , directly or indirectly , in case of Religion should be thence-forth vsed against Prince , Earle , or any imperiall Citie . In the yeare 1559. at Augusta , in a full assembly of the States , the said Decree was reuiued and confirmed . After which Constitutions confirmed by the transaction of Passauia , and confirmed by the Estates ( as I saide at Ausburg ) this good Emperour perswading himselfe , that mens mindes were wrought to Religion , more by preaching and teaching , then by force and bloud-shed ; was willing , euen within his owne hereditarie possessions , That no subiect of his should bee troubled for his conscience . Wishing , that some abuses ( vsed by the Romanists ) might by lawfull and moderate proceedings be reformed , and yet the Hierarchy and order of the Ecclesiastical policy , be decently maintained . Whereupon , when the Austrians desired the publique vse of the Lords supper in both kindes ; as also other articles of religion , to be freely permitted them , which they had drawen forth in the confession of Ausburg ; Ferdinand , not onely tooke the articles , and the reasons of the abuses ( deseruing reformation ) into his owne consideration : but also , when he heard the testimonie of the Greeke Church , concurring with the petition , hee sent Vrban Bishop of Gurcia for this cause principally to Venice , that there he should procure instructions , how the Greekes accustomed to doe in distribution of this part of the Lords supper : as also what was their Opinion concerning this maine point of doctrine . And in the Synod of Trent by his Orators , he did most instantly insist and vrge ; That by leaue of the Pope , the people of Austria might vse both the parts of the Sacrament . Somewhat before his death , he receaued the Breue , authorizing the Communion to be administred vnto the Laity vnder both kindes , which Pius the fourth sent vnto the Archbishop of Salisburge ; but interlaced with diuers limitation of conditiōs . Wherat this good Emperor did exceedingly reioyce , and gaue thanks that it pleased God , that he had obtained that , which his subiects of Austria , had so often , and so earnestly desired of his Maiestie . For his cariage towards the Counsell of Trent , which he referred wholy to his Holinesse , I hold it not fit to speake . For he adiudged , that hee had receiued an infinite pleasure from the Pope , in that he had graunted him that , ( though by much intreaty and many restrictions ) which Christ commanded vnto all Christians , plainly and effectually . ❧ Maximilian the second . Hee began his raigne in the sixt yeare of Queene Elizabeth . BEtter fortunes , then his father and vncle Charles , had not Maximilian the second , from whom concerning the ample promises of Clement the seuenth , wee haue heard this saying to proceed : It is surely Iacobs voice ; but his hands denote him to be Esau : vehemently complaining , That euermore these people haue violated their faith , and broken their leagues : That against all right and equitie , their words are of no validity , nor their oathes of force . And therefore hereafter neuer to be captiuated with security . He was created Emperour in the yeare of our Lord 1564. A Prince of a sincere disposition , especially in matters of religion : which when hee perceiued to be sorely shaken and rent , with diuersity of opinions ; hee greeued in minde , but shewed himselfe indifferent to the professors thereof , neuer hindering the course with any seuere edict . Which his godly moderation , caused the Romanists to offer him some hard measure surely not to be said , to haue vtterly washt away the contagion of their ancient treacherie and malice , in esse diuolued vpon them from the successiue discent of so many their predecessors . But this worthy Prince was nothing mooued thereat , neither started one iot from his accustomed lenitie . Crato Craftheim his Councellor and Physition , a man beyond all exception , shall witnesse it in his funerall Oration . The Emperor Maximilian neuer entred into iudgement of another mans Conscience , but alwaies in controuersie of Religion forbore by force to settle mens minds . For he confessed in the hearing of many men ten yeeres agoe , vnto William Prelate of Olomuch : That no sinne was more greeuous , then the forcing of Consciences , Many are also aliue who remember what hee said to a Prince flying his kingdome , and in his flight resorting vnto him for succour : Surely those that arrogate power ouer mens consciences , inuade the bulwarkes of Heauen , and oftentimes loose that Authority , which God here hath giuen them vpon earth . Such care and study as Father Ferdinand vsed in obseruing the Pacification of Passania , the same the sonne Maximilian emulated and defended , permitting vnto the Austrian Nobility the doctrine of the confession of Ausburg by edict , dated the 18. August 1568. For when as many noble men of Austria vnder the gouernment of Ferdinand , had presented vnto Charles the fift , certaine Euangelicall ministers professing the Confession of Ausburg : and amongst these , many turbulent spirits dismissed vppon many occasions from many parts of Germanie , had resorted vnto his gouernment as to a place of security ; And vnder blinde pretences of Euangelicall liberty had inconsiderately innouated and tumultuously preached many things concerning Church-gouernement : This Maximilian after the example of his father , thought it not meet to prohibit his subiects the confession of Ausburg ; and yet forbore not to restraine that anarchiall temerity of such hot spirits , throughout euery seuerall village of the Prouince , almost teaching and instituting a peculiar forme of Doctrine and Ceremonies . At last at the earnest entreaty and humble petitions of the Austrian Nobility , he permitted them the free exercise of the Augustan confession , both in Churches and families , so that they would assure him to obserue that certaine order of doctrine and celebration of the Lords supper , throughout all their Churches , which as then was already vsed and imbraced by the residue of the Protestant Churches , according to the prescript of order of the said confession . For reformation whereof he emploied Ioachim Camerarius and Dauid Chytreus : and the promise once granted , being afterwards Emperor he obserued most religiously . Of whose faith and integrity , although to his neuer dying honour much may be spoken , yet here will we cease , and fall to discourse vpon the succession of his Sonne Rodolph . What further matter the good and well minded Reader may expect , I will leaue to his own discretion to be exemplified , by the application of these old verses : Tempora mutantur , Papa & mutatur in illis : Felix quem faciunt Romana pericula cautum . ❧ Rodolph the second . RODOLPH now onely remaineth . Here , whether I should admire at the busie , but now out-worne fury , tyranny and ambition of these selfe-wild Bishops : or reioice at the restored magnanimity , fortitude , and constancy of our Emperour Rodolph , I confesse my selfe grauelled . But to affirme nothing of mine owne braine , here behold a witnesse acting his own part ; A man aboue exception , auouching — He is the same , who was Author of the Commentary vpon the Coloin Businesse . These are his words ; What ( saith hee ) should I speake of the inuincible Emperour Rodolph , who now raigneth . I haue seene his Embassadours at Rome , the most noble and valiant Lord Flacchus , Prior of the Order of Saint Iohn of Ierusalem in Germany , and Ierome Turner of his Maiesties Councell : A man of exquisit learning , of high wisedom , faithfull and honest . I soiourned with them in the same house ; For they lodged with Cardinall Mandrutius ( whome for honours sake I name ) my very honourable good Master , and a man of excellent vertues . He for acquaintance sake intertained them kindly , and vsed them royally : they stayed with vs almost one whole summer : of which delay this was the cause . The Pope , Gregorie the thirteenth was wonderfull desirous to haue the Emperour performe his obedience to his Popeship . For , that it ought so to be , he pleaded prescription . The Ambassadors , to doe more then their Commission warranted , resolutely refused . And their Commission stretched no further , then to promise Obsequium , his humble seruice to the Pope , but obedience vnto the Church . Letters hereof were sent vnto his Maiesty , and meane while Turner was eagerly assaulted by the Cardinals to change opinion ; but he was constant . At last , vntill the Emperors Maiesty could be wrought , to relinquish that forme of words , which the worthy and laudable Caesars , Ferdinand his grandfather and Maximilian his father had vsed , the Embassador was accepted to do what he was commanded . And so in a full assembly of the Cardinals , the Pope being mounted vpon an high Seig , Hee promised his Holinesse his seruice , and the Church , his obedience . In action whereof he gaue good proofes of his learning , wisedome , and admirable boldnesse . To many in the City , this seemed a ridiculous contention , sithence the words obsequium and obedientia doe so little differ in substance : but let them laugh ; The Popes rites well vnderstand the meaning thereof , otherwise , let them bee assured , that his wisedome would not so stifly haue insisted vppon the bare word of obedience . As for the Emperour , the world knoweth , that here he made it manifest , that hee was not bound to giue obedience vnto a Bishop , his subiect , from whome hee expected subiection and fealtie : At leastwise he layde an excellent foundation , towards the restitution of the decayed Honour of the Empire , by others to be perfected as God and time shall offer occasion . For what a greater blessing can a Christian man wish , then to see a Bishop praying and preaching , and abhorring to prescribe lawes vnto a temporall Emperour ? What other thing more necessarie for peace and humane society can the Councel of State deuise , then to bridle seditious mindes , from taking aduantage to disquiet the State , vpon euery sinister seducement of an vnconscionable Iesuite ? Which if they once effect , then shall the Emperours giue them their due fauours , that is , acknowledge the Lateran Bishops to be venerable fathers . If these passages , I say , were reduced to their pristinate forme and integrity , then no longer should wee behold the Christian people turmoyled in discords , no Princes murdered , no oaths of allegeance impugned , no equiuocation iustified , nor Turkish inuasions so powerfully maintained . But of these abuses , and many more mentioned by mine Author , and still maintained , but not with auncient obstinacie , for want of this implored reformation , let him that hath a stomach to bee informed , read the Apology , brought out of Spaine , and printed at Antwarp in the yeare 1527. There in order shall hee finde as much as followeth , the summe whereof drawen into heads , shall suffice for this present . 1 The Breues of Clement the seuenth , wherein hee loadeth Caesar with as many calumniations , as his witte could deuise , and those most false and forged . 2 The aunswere of the Emperour Charles the fifth vnto these forgeries . 3 The second Breues of the Pope , wherein vppon repentance that hee had falsly accused Caesar , hee sendeth vnto his Nuncio , to forbid him the deliuery of the former Breues . 4 The answer of Caesar to these second Breues . 5 An Epistle of Charles Caesar vnto the Colledge of Cardinalls , desiring them , that in case his Holinesse did continue either to denie , or differ , a generall Councell , that they themselues would proclaime it . Now that wee haue fully informed you how this halfe-deplumed Estritch hath notwithstanding opposed against the two last Emperours , Ferdinand and Maximilian , and not at this day feareth not to bee troublesome vnto their successour Rodolph : As also , how his patience hath beene nettled by the transaction of Passauia , and the Edicts of peace deuised , ratified and proclaimed by these three late worthy Emperours : It shall not for a perclous vnto your wearied mindes , I hope , proue a loathing seruice , if I shall in order recite vnto you , at what warde his Holinesse at this day lieth , considering that hee is not able any longer , to set father against sonne , and sonne against father in open action ; Prince against Prince , and people against Prince , and Prince against people . These practises are reuealed and absolute , now must they erect ( and but once erect ) an order to purpose ; An order that must commit all villanies , and his Popeship not seene therein : an order that must studie Matchiauell , entertaine intelligence , and able in it selfe to negotiat in Princes affaires , without posting and reposting , to the view of the world , for their dispatches to Rome : an order of all orders that euer were deuised , the most cruell and truly bestial ; the bane of mankinde , and the fire-brands of Christendome . Of whom , if any worthy pen would take the paines , to indict a Legend ; the world should soone perceiue , that they to the vnderpropping of this declining sea , within these few yeares , haue committed as many forgeries , villanies , and seducements to warre and murder , as their Masters before them haue done in many Ages . So furious are their humours , so irregular their consciences to worke , pleasing seruices to their politique Monarch ! Bound they are to auert , whatsoeuer they shall thinke or know preiudiciall to the Romish sea . Bound they are ( as much as in them lieth ) to hinder the propagation of the Gospel . Then , their calling being such , their seruice such , and such their vowes , let vs learne amongst many of their actions , by some few , what peace in religion is to be expected , from such persons , that hereafter we may be able to discerne the man by his speech , as the Lion by his clawes . Notes of priuate passion . HE that playeth the Prologue , is Conradus Brunus , attired in his third booke . cap. 1. pag 305. oppugning , railing and annihilating the Transaction of Passauia , and the peace granted thereupon ; a peace so religiously ratified by such and so many hand-writings , and so solemnly sworne vnto by such iust , honourable and worthy personages . At his first entrance you shall know him by his brazen face , and now you shall heare him speake . The Edict ( saith hee ) is friuolous , void , and at no hand to be obserued : His reason , because a Catholique ought not liue peaceably with such Heretiques , for so should they neuer be offended nor abolished . Yea , so much the rather were the association so ordered to be abhorred and abominable , for that a Catholique meeting one of them , should be adiudged to haue assented to the peace : But to offend them ( with whom there is no communion ) can be no breach of peace ; as whom the Lawes of the Empire doe subiect vnder a curse , and expose to offence , without punishment : Finally , whom all diuine and humane constitutions , would haue to be vtterly extirpated . The next that presenteth himselfe is Paul Windich , in his booke de Haereticis extirpandis pag. 324. And hee termeth this religious peace to be nothing but a breathing , a delay , or a toleration . pag. 327. He saith , that , in his minde , he can but wonder at the madnesse of the Sectaries . For foolishly auouching , and so often babling out the Decrees of the Diets , for the free exercise of their religion . If I should stand to present you with Melchion , Hosius and Posserinus , who wrote whole discourses vnto Henry and Stephan Kings of Polonia , to take into their serious cogitations , the extirpation of the Euangelicall professors , I should but weary you with words . Two lines shall suffice . With the Protestant ( Polonians ) the assurance giuen vpon Faith , is at no hand to be obserued : for that an oath ought not to be the bond of iniquitie . Iames Menochius the Lawyer , Consil . 100. Num. 225. excuseth the Romane Emperor Sigismund , in that he violated his safe conduct . As concerning the which ouersight , the impudent assertions of the Iesuits of Treuers are worthy the relation , published in a certaine booke intituled , The Concertation of the Catholicke Church , Printed 1583. pag. 4. Husse did require safe conduct of Sigismund : Sigismund signed it : but the Christian world , viz. the fathers of the Councel of Constance , being Sigismunds superiors , did disalow it . Simanch a Bishop of Pacia , that lying spirit , blushed not to affirme , in his Catholique Institution Cap. 46. Num. 52. That at no hand , faith was to bee kept towards Heretiques , no not vpon oath . And therefore it was iustly decreed ; That against the tenor of the oath , Husse and Ierome of Prage were burned , and a Canon prouided ; That an oath made towards an Heretique , was not to be regarded . And at last concludeth , That as warning thereof , ought often to bee giuen , so is it very necessary , that it be often re-iterated , and at no time to be silenced , as often as any mention of this peace is obiected . O! Why should I offend the chast cares of any good Christian with such infernall stuffe ? Smally hath he profited in the schoole of Gods word , that in his owne conscience is not able to decide controuersies , of much more cunning cariage , then any of these . In regard whereof , I will here cease , and affirme , That in knowing of one , you know all : such is their malice in seruice of the Romish sea , towards Emperor , Kings , Princes , and free States . Let him that hath a mind to bee further and fully satisfied , peruse the most excellent treatises printed this present yeere 1609. For Conclusion vnto these plaine and pregnant presidents of Popish tyranny by time and vsurpation practised vppon the sacred Maiesties of mightie Princes , mine Authour , truely to aggrauate their immoderate pride , and further to encourage the aggreeued parties to hasten their Reformation , for warrantize out of diuers Authours , hee hath culled out many irresistable testimonies to prooue , That Rome is Babylon , and the Bishop thereof Antichrist . Which for that ( in mine opinion ) in few words they haue beene more liuelier represented vnto your consideratiue consciences , in his Maiesties most excellent Premonition , then which nothing can be spoken more fullie , truely , and indifferently , without spleene , or ambiguitie . I will heere craue pardon to ouerpasse them , and in lieu therof content you , with some few both theorique and practique notes , hatched vpon the same grounds , but practised vpon other states , of later daies in diuers parts of Christendome . And first of their Iesuiticall Theoriques , thus collected into order , and eight times printed : as mine Authour affirmeth . Regulae Iuris Romani . 1. The Bishop of Rome hath in himselfe all manner of power , both spiritual & temporall : Authority to commād , to forbid , to curse , & to excōmunicat : al power of punishing , right of Election and conferring the lieutenancy of the Empire . Power , to create & depose magistrates , euen Emperors , Kings & Princes : so of al other Potentates , & their subiects . These aphorisms are to be receiued as an article of faith : He that alloweth not , or beleeueth not so much , is to be reputed a most detestable Heretique . 2. On the contrary , all Ecclesiasticall persons , Bishops , Prelates , Priests , Monks , Nuns , and all their temporall goods , their priuiledges and estates , are vtterly exempted and freed from all obedience of temporall Lords , from their commands , contributions , and superiorities ; and that aswell in personall and reall impleadings , as in ciuill and criminall actions . Neither are they bound to obey Emperor , King , or any Lay Magistrate . Yea Caesar , Kings and Princes , ought to instruct his fortresses rather to ecclesiasticall persons , then to Lay Captaines . 3. Albeit the Pope be a Man , yet for that he is Gods vicar on earth ( a reason wherfore diuine honor is due to him ) he can not erre in points concerning Christian doctrine ; no although all other ecclesiasticall fathers , yea and the Councels themselues should fall into error . An argument , That from Councels we must appeale to the Pope ; but not e contra , From the Pope , to the Councel . 4. The Validity , interpretations , and power of innouating the sacred Scriptures , resteth in the bosome of the Pope : but his Holinesse decrees , as simply necessary to faith and saluation , are immutable , forcible , and obligatory . 5. The constitutions , Statutes , ordinances , parliaments , edicts , Confederacies , & al letters patents , of Emperors Kings , Princes , & other estates , which fauour any other religion , then the modern Roman ought to be reputed voide and of no force , no , although an oath be interposed . 6. The Edict of religion concluded by the general consent of the German Nation , is not obligatory ; for that it was procured by force . That , it was granted , but to serue the time , as a Delay , or Toleration : viz. vntill the publication of the Councell of Trent , which followed in the yeere 1564. 7. That now the Romanists are to imploy their vtmost indeuours by fire , sword , poison , powder , warre , or any other engine , to suppresse all heretiques , but especially the Lutherans and Caluinists , with their fautors and the politique catholiques , who had rather maintaine peace , then adioyne their forces to the Catholique side in extirpation of heresies . 8. But this rule is not without exceptiō : If they haue cause to feare that the proiect be not likely to second imagination , or that danger or detriment be likely to arise thereof to the Catholique cause : In this case , some regard is to bee had to the time , and a better season to be expected . Yet some are againe of opinion : That time is not to be respected . For what requitall shall a Iesuit returne to so benigne a parent as the Pope , if hee stand tampering vpon the safetie of his conscience , or the security of his life ? And therefore without any longer temporizing , it were better that in all places these Lutherans and Caluinists were speedily banished , suppressed , or vtterly rooted out ; so that hereafter not so much as one seed may be left , to restore so much as the remembrance of their Religion . 9. As soon as the Roman-Catholique subiects in their Conciliables haue decreed , That the Emperor , King or Prince vnder whom they serue , is to be accounted a Tyrant : then is it lawfull for them to renounce him , and to hold themselues free from their oath of allegeance . But if they be deemed to hold their assemblies ; Then is it granted vnto euery priuate subiect , yea praise-worthie and meritorious , to murder such a King or Prince : but with prouiso , that hee proceede not before hee haue vsed the counsell of some Iesuit , or such like Theologian . Wherein , the Munke Iames Clement , who slew Henry the third with an inuenomed knife , made true vse of this Rule . And in those dayes , hee was adiudged to haue acted as meritorious an action , that should haue played the like part by his successour Henry the fourth . 10 If subiects haue a Lutheran or Caluinist to their King , or Prince , who indeuoreth to bring them into Heresies , ( you must alwaies vnderstand what Heresies they meane ) they are those subiects quitted of homage & fealty towards their soueraigne Masters . To whom it is lawfull and granted to renounce , murder or imprison such an anointed and high Magistrate . 11 That , Emperors , Kings & Princes may be poysoned by their vassals and seruants ; in case the Theologians , or Iesuits , being learned and graue men , doe account them for tyrants : prouided , that the concluded party to die , doe not amend , nor procure his owne voluntary destruction . 12 The Pope hath the free gift of all the kingdoms , principalities , and territories of all hereticall and infidel Princes : and such donations shall be firme and auailable to all constructions and purposes . 13 It is lawfull and granted to Iesuits , and all other Catholique Priests , in case they happen to be examined before heretique Magistrates , to vse equiuocation , mental reseruation , false names , and counterfeit apparrell : the better to insinuate , and dispatch their treacheries . 14 That it is lawfull for Iesuites and such like Romanists to equiuocate to the demaunds of Magistrates : And that as well by oath , as without . But this is to be vnderstoode , when the Respondent doth not account the Demaundant for a competent Iudge or Magistrate : Or when , the Respondent doth imagine , that the Iudge ( though competent ) hath no lawfull pretence of examination : Or when hee supposeth his Aduersarie , hath no iust cause of questioning him . 15 That such Catholiques are not bound to aunswere priuate Catholiques from the heart , and with conscience , but to equiuocate , and answer them with double meanings . 16 That this equiuocation is a profitable Arte , and good policy . Wherewith Martin Azpileneta , vnto whose doctrine Gregory the thirteenth gaue the attestation of vnanswerable and Holy : And of whom the Iesuit Horat. Tursellimus in the life of Lauerius affirmeth , That hee was a man excellent for his honestie and learning , congratulateth himselfe , and boasteth , that he commanded vnto a certaine great Prince the Apothegme ; Qui nescit dissimulare , nescit viuere ; Whereof the sayde Prince made afterwards great vse and profite . These were the passions that troubled our forraigne Nouellists ; In lieu of many , to auoid prolixity , now let vs proceed to examine at what marke , the Romanists on this side the sea doe also leuell . And Saunders , for that hee will satisfie vs by Scripture ; is traced by Bellarmine , and magnified by our aduersaries to be a man of most eminent learning , shall bee speaker for the whole factorie . But by the way you must note , that these had their priuate respects in their hearts , while they held their pens in their hands : So this our Country-man was not destitute of his priuate passion also , which was either an ouer-hard conceit against his deerest Soueraigne Queen Elizabeth , out of whose Kingdome hee was banished ; or an ouer-weeing respect , deuoted vnto the seruice and gracious aspect of Pope Pius the fift , vnto whom hee stood many wayes beholden . Otherwise your consciences would assure you , that he would neuer haue broached so manifest a lye . The worke whereat hee aymed , and the greeuances which disquieted his penne , your discretions may iudge of , by reuoking to minde , the daies wherein hee liued , and the personage that then reigned . Mutato nomine , the positions ( you know ) as yet are as peremptorily maintained , and therefore aboue the rest fittest to be spoken vnto . With a liuely suke to corroborat a bad matter , hee groundeth his first authority ( his reasons & arguments as flowing from the bitternesse of his priuate braine I will ouer-passe ) vpon the second booke of Cronicles the 26. Chapter , where we read ; Oziam regem , cùm sacerdotum officium vsurpauit , á Pontifice fuisse de templo eiectum . Et cum propter idem peccatū , lepra a Deo percussus fuisset , coactùm etiam fuisse ex vrbe discedere , & regnum filio renunciare . Quod non sponte sua , sed ex sententia sacerdotis , vrbe , & regni administratione priuatus fuerit , patet . Nā legimus Leuit. 13. Quicunque , inquit Lex , maculatus fuerit lepra , & seperatus est ad arbitrium sacerdotis , solus habitabit extra castra . Cum ergo , haec fuerit Lex in Israel , & simul legimus 2. Paralip . 26. Regem habitasse extra vrbem in domo solitaria ; & filium eius in vrbe iudicasse populum terrae , cogimur dicere , fuisse cū ad arbitrium sacerdotis separatum , & consequentèr regnandi authoritate priuatum . Si ergo propter lepram corporalem poterat sacerdos olim regem iudicare , & regno priuare : quare id non potest modo propter lepram spiritualem , id est , propter haeresim , quae per lepram figurabatur ; vt August . decet in questionibus Euangelicis lib. 2. quaest . 40. praesertim cum 1. Cor. 10. Paulus dicat : Contigisse Iudeis omnia in figuris . Haec ille . That Ozias the King , when he vsurped vpon the office of the Priest-hood , was by the Priest cast out of the temple . And when , for the same sinne he was strucken by God with leaprosie , he was constrained to depart out of the City , & to resigne the kingdom to his sonne . That not of his own accord , but by the sentence of the high Priest , hee was banished the City , and depriued of the gouernment of the kingdome . It appeareth , Leuit. 13. whosoeuer ( saith the Law ) shall bee touched with the leaprosie , and is seperated by the iudgement of the Priest , he shall dwell by himselfe without the tents . Sithence then , this was the Law in Israel : as also that we read 2. Paralip . 26. That the King dwelled without the City in a solitary Mansion ; and that his sonne iudged the people of the land within the City : wee must of necessity confesse , that hee was sequestred by the iudgment of the Priest , and consequently depriued of all authority of gouernment . If then , in respect of corporall leprosie , the Priest of old might dispose of the King and dispossesse him of his kingdome . Wherefore now may not the Pope doe the like , in case of spirituall leprosie , viz. for heresie , figured by Leprosie , as saith S. Augustin , in his Euangelicall questions lib. 2. quaest . 40. Especially when in the first to the Cor. ca. 10. Paul saith : That all things were manifested vnto the Iewes in figures . Hitherto Saunders . Take him at his word , and heere were learning enough to deceiue millions of soules : but examine him by his owne authority , and you shall find him in a miserable taking , vnlesse God be mercifull . For to prooue it most false , That Ozias was depriued of his regall Authority by the sole iudgement of the high Priest : Nothing through the whole History of the Kings is more liuely expressed , then that Ozias from the sixteenth yeere of his age , when he began to raign , to the 60. yeere , wherein he died , was perpetuall King. Neither was he at any time during his naturall life depriued of his kingdome . Without question he dwelled in an House apart : And in that respect , for the nature of his Disease , hee could not dispatch the office of a King , which is of fact . But that bereaued him not of the right of his kingdome , neither of his Kingly capacity ; for so wee should deny , that Children being crowned ( as in times past Ioas and Iosias were ) and men of full age ( if they had fallen into irrecouerable sicknesses , either of mind , or body ) to be Kings ; sithence the one by nonage , the other by sicknesse are necessarilie sequestred from managing the State , which consisteth in action . 2. But Ozias continued king as long as he liued . For the scripture saith : In the seuen and twentith yeere of Ieroboam king of Israel , raigned Azarias ( called also Ozias , and Zacharias ) the sonne of Amazias king of Iuda . Sixteen yeere old was he , when he began to raigne , and he raigned fifty two yeeres in Ierusalem . Behold our Romanist here plainely detected of an vntrueth ( as I promised gone before ) and that by the truest testimony , that humane satisfaction can vnder the concaue of the heauens demand . But to bewray the true genius of impudency , I will yet go farther , to his and his partakers finall confusion . Witnesse the 2. of Kings . v. 27. In the two and fiftieth yeere of Azarias King of Iuda , Pekan the sonne of Romeliah raigned ouer Israel in Samaria . Heere is plaine dealing , and matter vpon record . How shall we here beleeue this Romanist , when the spirit of trueth and Antiquity giueth vs assurance , that he continued King thirty six yeers after his Coronation . To the further verifying wherof ( if it were possible ) Iosephus recordeth in his 9. book of Antiquities , cap. 11. That Azarias ( or Ozias ) dyed in the sixty eight yeere of his age , and in the two and fiftith yeere of his raigne : which being most true , that he began his raigne at sixteen yeeres , and dyed at sixty eight ; what testimony is obiected in the course of his life , whereby we may gather that he was either deposed or depriued from his legall inheritance ? That during the time of his visitation , his sonne was but his deputy , we will prooue anon directly , as it is accustomed to be done vnto them , who in like cases are not able to attend their affaires themselues . For no lesse doth the same Text auerre : Ioatham the Kings Sonne was Ouer-seer of the Kings Pallace , and gouerned the Kings House , and iudged the people of the Land. Here obserue , that Ioatham is stiled but the Kings sonne in the life time , and sicknesse of his father ; Gouernour of the Court , and as I may properly speake , Lord steward of his Fathers house . And why did hee sit in iudgement amongst the people ? because their complaints could not with conueniency be brought vnto the kings iudicature , by reason of his infirmity , and his separation thereupon by the prescript commaundement of Gods Law. Leuit. 13. 3. For confirmation of which last point , heare what the Text sayth : And Ozias slept with his Fathers , and they buried him in the field of the Regall Sepulchres , because he was a leaper . And Ioatham his sonne raigned in his stead . Here again obserue , how plainly the scripture leadeth vs in the way of truth : Euen now , It termes Ioatham the Kings sonne , the kings steward , or seruant : But now , after the decease of his father ( and not before ) It saith : Regnare caepit : He began to raigne . Yet Ozias was separated by the commaund of the high Priest ? True : but that was also commanded by the liuely voice of the Diuine Law ▪ But that he was deposed or depriued from his legall inheritance , his kingly authority , or inforced to resigne his estate to his sonne before his death : No man will auouch it , vnlesse a bloody and passionate Romanist . The simple know , that Soueraignety and Gouernement are of no lesse difference then proprietas and possession , or as I may speake , an estate determinable , and an estate in Fee. Soueraignety is alwaies incorporated vnto the person of the King , is as it were the soule of a kingdome , and inseparable from the right thereto : But Gouernment , Lieutenancy , or procuration may bee diuested vppon deputies . As in the nonage of kings ; or in times of daungerous sicknesses , those who are assigned to take care of the waighty affaires of the kingdome , are stiled Deputies , Protectors , Tutors , Lieutenants , Viceroyes , or Gouernors , neither propounding , dispatching , nor negotiating any publique businesse in their owne names , but vnder the stile and seale of the yong , or diseased Soueraigne . His second authority is taken from the second of Chronicles the 23. Chapter , which because in truth it is but impertinent , though most maliciously framed ▪ I will recite in our vulgar tongue only . At what time Athalia gouerned the kingdome by tyranny , and maintained the worship of Baal , Ioada the High Priest called vnto him the Centurions and souldiers , and commaunded them to slay Athalia , And in her stead they crowned Ioas king . That the Priest perswaded not , but commanded , it is apparant by those words in the fourth of Kings , and eleuenth Chapter . And the men of warre did according vnto all that Ioada the High priest commanded them . Againe by those in the second of Chronicles the three and twentith Chapter . But Ioada the high Priest going out vnto the Centurions & leaders of the Army , said vnto them ; Bring her forth ( Athalia the Queene ) from the precinct of the Temple , and let her be slaine without by the sword . That the cause of the deposition and killing of Athalia , was not onely her tyrannie , but also her maintenance of the worship of Baal ; It is proued by the words immediatly placed after her slaughter . Whereupon , saith the Scripture , All the people entred into the house of Baal , and destroyed it , and broke downe the Altars and the images thereof . They also slew Mathan the Priest of Baal before the Altar . That this example of Ioada and Athalia , do nothing concerne the marke , whereat they so preposterously and maliciously leuel : or the moderne controuersie of Papal intrusion ouer Kings and Princes , we wil resolue you forthwith . For the Example of Athalia , is of a party , who vsurped vpon a Kingdome without any lawfull pretension , saue meere and barbarous tyrannie ; by force , by wickednesse , and the cruell murder of the royall Progenie . In which case , the President was so abominable , that euen without the commandement of Ioada , it might haue beene lawfull for euery priuate Magistrate to haue iustified her death : but for that such a designment seemed dangerous and difficult to be executed vpon her , who was mother to the deceased King Ahaziah ; therefore was it needfull to haue vsed the counsell and assistance of Ioada the high Priest . Or at least , of some such eminent person , who for the Honour of his place , or the reputation of vprightnesse , was of power to assemble and stirre vp the souldiers and people to so iustifiable an action . But that the Act was executed as well by perswasion as commaund ; It appeareth by that which was spoken : Ioada the high Priest sent , and tooke the Centurions and men of warre vnto him , and caused them to come into the Temple ; Pepigitque cum eis faedus : And he couenanted with them . Now I hope that so absolute a Commander , as our Romanists will make this high Priest to be , would haue scorned to haue capitulated , if hee could haue commanded . Besides , the words , we will , or command , are accustomably vsed by those , who in faction , or in any other publique businesse obtaine the prime-place of imployment . What then may be found in this example to inforce Ioadas , or the Popes omnipotency , for innouation of States or Kingdoms ? What is brought to proue so dangerous an assertion . This is a true president to be inforced against a Tirannesse or an vsurper . But there is a great dissimilitude betweene legal Lords , or true proprietaries , and theeues ; or the inuaders of another mans possession . If there were any cause besides tyrannie , materiall to depose , or sley Athalia , what is that to vs. Let it be inforced against people guilty of like offences , viz. those that worship , and defend the worship of Baal , and the hoast of Heauen . It is sufficient , that shee was a Tyrannesse , and an iniurious Vsurper vppon an other mans Kingdome ; without that , that vpon her part there remained any obstacle , or impediment of Lawe , but that shee might bee deposed from her throane , and slaine . The like whereof , I hope , no good Christian will affirme concerning any lawfull King ; whose sacred person ( although blemished by many humane infirmities ) the Right of Inheritance , the Maiestie of his Place , and the capacity of his calling , ought alwaies , and that for conscience sake , to protect & defend from iniurie , infamie , and humane controlement . To which , let all true Christians say , Amen . Now to their practique . NOw that I haue epitomized vnto your considerations the theorems , rules , and policies of this inforced vsurpation : I will also make manifest vnto you by true booke cases , how they haue practised vpon these Theorems , throughout all the kingdoms of Christendome . In Spaine , vpon suspition of heresie , they so ouer-awed the conscience of Philip the second , that they caused the vncompassionate father , in a bath to open the veines of Charles his eldest sonne , a Prince of admirable expectation ; there to bleede out his deerest life . Now to explane vnto you , what heresie this noble yong Prince had committed , let me report vnto you ( if fame say truth ) that it arose forsooth vpon his hard vsage towards the Clergie ; In dismounting them riding vpon their pleasures , from their excellent Ienets and stately Mules ; and sending them home to their studies ; bestowing these beasts vpon some of his more worthy followers . Or peraduenture vpon iealousie , that manifesting too much of the Grandfathers spirit , in future times , He might call them to account , as did Charles the fifth . Herman once Archbishop of Colein , to say for himselfe what he could , against the accusations libelled against Him , by his Clergie , and the Vniuersitie . I assure you , farre lesse sinnes , then these , are able to cast the best man liuing into the bottomlesse pit of their fierie Inquisition , Vnde nulla redemptio . Who were of Councell vnto Sebastian , the last of house of Portugal , to vndertake that wofull , but as they termed it , that most meritorious iourney into Africa ? To vnderstand the true motiues whereof , I will say no more , but referre you ouer to the Iesuits Cata. fo . 709. Who but the same brood of Iesuits made away Iohn of Albret , Queene Dowager of Nauarre , the very eye of the French Protestants , by impoisoned Pills ; which an Italian , the Kings Apothecary at Paris , prepared for her ? Who but the brochets of such impieties , were the instruments of that most infernall resolution ; vnder the colour of so solemne and Prince-like a marriage , to contriue the death of the Nauarrois , and the massacre of so many braue Princes and Gentlemen , of the Religion through the whole territories of Fraunce ; And that without any regard or touch of conscience , in abusing and violating the oath of safe conduct , religiously swore vnto , by the King himselfe . By what sort of men , I pray you , was Peter Barr. suborned , and obliged by Sacrament , trayterously to haue murdered Henry the fourth ? And by whom , let me aske you , is the Auditory at this day admonished , but to make vse of some small patience , For within few dayes , God himselfe is to make his personall appearance amongst vs , to worke I know not what , miracles , to the confusion of Heretiques . Was not Iohn Chastelius , a yong man of nineteene yeers of age , and a nouice in Claremount Colledge , fully satisfied , thinke you , by the resolutions and incouragements of these persons , and vpon the foresaid positions ; before he would hazard his portion in heauen , to vndertake the slaughter of the said king of France & Nauar ? But as God would , he missed his throat , & by the wauering of his hand , strooke out but one of his teeth : affirming that he was but as another Ehud , apointed to murder Eglon the wicked king of the Moabites . By whome were so many and so often treacheries plotted not only to haue beene executed by strangers against Queene Elizabeth , but also by her owne seruants , namely Parry , Squier , Lopez , Yorke , Williams , and Patrike Cullen : By whome was her sacred Maiesty excommunicated , her peace disturbed , her subiects assayled , her Realme betrayed , and her life set at sale to bee taken away by any meanes ; by poyson , by massiue rewards , or any other kind of violence what euer ? I will not stand to dilate hereupon . The world I hope is againe and againe satisfied with the proofe hereof . It yet freshly remembreth , what ouertures were made , euen but yesterday , and by whome , vnto the Spanish king for a second Inuasion . And as yet , Caelum , non animum mutant , qui trans mare currunt . For , it is as cleere as day , that none but men moulded and sold ouer to the worst of wickednesse , would euer haue imagined or consented to haue blowen vp a State-house ; And that vpon the first day , and first sitting , when in certainty they knew , that of necessity the King and Prince would be present , the assembly fullest , and the massacre bloodiest . Who were the instruments , that Sigismund K. of Polonia and Sweland after the death of his father returned into Sweland , there against the tenor of his oath , to root out the Lutheran Religion as they terme it ? who were the authors of the vnseasonable commotions in Liuonia ? who accouncelled him by surprise to inuade the kingdome , and almost to haue lost his life , as he hath now at last the kingdome ? And by whose seducements hath hee attempted so many innouations in Polonia ? To what shall we attribute , but to their daungerous instigations , that Demetrius beeing returned out of Poland into Moscouie , in attempting to alter the receiued Religion of the Moscouits , was himself in one day depriued of life and Empire , with an infinit number of his nobles and followers ? Whom should we accuse , but these furies , for the murder of the worthy Prince of Orange , shot to death by Balthasar Gonhard , before prepared for blood by the assurance of these cunning Garnets ? What should I dull your eares with these vnpleasant discourses ? If you list , your selues may reade at leysure the examinations of Peter de Pennes , Michael Renicher , and Peter de Four , against the life of Graue Maurice , the aforesaid Prince his Son , for maintaining the cause of Religion ? I could also , bring you presidents from Transiluania 1607. from Bohemia , 1608. from Austria 1609. Bauaria , 1592. Argentina 1698. Aquisgran , 1607 Donauerd and Venice 1606. but that I am very vnwilling to tire your patience with the desperate resolutions of these irregular and faithlesse men . Faithlesse to God : for they vow religion and humility , but worke treachery and affect superiority . And irregular amongst men , for they preach faith , and administer oathes ; and yet if any thing displease them , they send soules to desperation , and make port-sale of periury . And therefore to conclude , I will for your perpetuall remembrance , in the person of one , describe the very genius of the whole fraternity in these short remembrances following . Seductor Sweco : Gallo Sicarius : Anglo Proditor : Imperio Explorator : Dauus Ibero : Italo Adulator : Dixi teres ore suitam . He that hath oft the Sweth-land-Pole seduced : Murdred the French : And Englands-King abused : A spie for Austria : A cunning knaue for Spaine , And sooths th' Italian States to Popish gaine ; Is All one Man , and Iesuit is his name . And what yee read of Henry , Frederick , Of Otho Great : and their Succession . Gainst a Philip Faire , and the b twelfe Lodowic , French Kings : Gainst c Henry th' eight of Albion , And his diuinest child d Eliza Queene : With many more of Nations far and wide , Be bold to say : Like measure to haue beene In high proportion meated from That side . The Tables to this Booke : The first declaring how many Emperors haue beene either Excommunicated , or constrained to kisse his Holinesse Feete . Emperrours Excommunicated by Otho the fourth . Innocent the third . Henry the fourth . Gregorie the 7. Henry the fift . Paschal the second . Frederick the first Adrian the fift . Philip the sonne of Frederick . Alexander the 3. Frederick the secōd . Innocent the third thrice by Gre. the 9. Conradus the fourth Innocent the fourth Lodowick the Bauarian . Iohn the 22. Benedict the 12. and Clement the VI. Emperours Constrained to kisse the feet of Charles the great . Iustian Emperor of Constantinople . Luit Prandus king of Lomb. Crescentius Consul . &c. Otho the first . Frederick the first . Henry the fift . Sigismund . Charles the fift . Adrian the Pope . Stephen the second . Iohn the xvij . Iohn the xvij . Alexander the third agroofe , &c. Paschal the second . Of Martin the fift , and Eugenius the fourth . Of Clement the seuenth . The second , deuided into Sections ; seuerally epitomizing the liues of the Popes , with the vices whereunto euery one hath in particular beene addicted , viz. who haue beene , 1 Atheists . 2 Arrians . 3 Magitians or Coniurers . 4 Blasphemers . 5 Forswearers and equiuocators . 6 Turkish Pentioners . 7 Mad-men and tyrants . 8 Warriours and bloud-succours . 9 Traytours and mouers of seditions . 10 Parricids and impoysoners . 11 Whoremasters . 12 Adulterers . 13 Incestuous persons . 14 Sodomites . 15 Pandars . 16 Bawdes . 17 Bastards . 18 Drunkards . 19 Couetous persons . 20 Church-robbers . 21 Simonianists . 22 Ambitious persons . 23 Monsters . 24 Vnlearned persons . ❧ Liues of the Popes . 1. Atheists . LEo the tenth : who hearing Cardinall Bembo speaking to a point concerning , The ioyfull message of our Lord , answered most dissolutely ; It is well knowen to the world through all ages , in how great stead that fable of Christ hath profited vs and our associates . This man neither beleeued heauen , nor hell , after our departure out of this life . And such were Alexander the tenth , Siluester the second , Paul the third , Benedict the nineteenth , Iohn the thirteenth , Clement the seuenth , & Gregory the seuenth . 2. Arrians . Anastasius , the eleuenth : Liberius and Felix . 3. Magitians and Coniurers . ALexander the sixth : this man made a league with the diuell , vpon promise to procure him the Papacie . Paul the 3. obtained the garland in Astrology , and in that kind of speculatiō , which is assisted by the ministery of diuels . He altogether kept familiar acquaintance with Negromancers , & such like notable impostures , and starre-gazers , to learne the faults of himselfe and his children . Siluester the second , as well seene in these diabolical Arts , as his Predecessors , gaue himselfe wholly to the diuell , vpon condition to aduance him to the Papacie . Benedict the ninth , obtained the same sea by charms , spels & inchantments . Before his instalment , in company of his associates , in woods and remote places he was accustomed to inuoke euill spirits , and by Negromantike toyes to worke women to his filthy lust . Iohn the thirteenth , at dice would call vpon the diuell , and in merriment carouse a cup of wine to his diuelship . Of Clement the seuenth , we read that he was a Geomantique and Simonianist . Gregory the seuenth , laboured the Papacie by the same Arts. He was the first that euer presumed to excommunicate an Emperour . And that was Henry the fourth , vnto the end of whose legend , if you please , you may with pleasure and to good purpose add these true and vncontrolable records . With the forme of his Outlary vpon earth , we will not trouble you ; but with his impudent presumption in banishing his soule from heauen ( a place wherein I feare ) such persons haue smallest interest , ad perpetuam rei memoriam , I will not faile to informe you . Then thus . Agite igitur Apostolorum sanctissimi Principes , & quod dixi vestra authoritate interposita , confirmate , vt omnes nunc demū intelligāt , si potestis in caelo ligare & soluere , in terra quoque imperia regna , principatus , & quicquid habere mortales possunt , auferre & dare vos posse . Ediscant nunc Reges huius exemplo , & omnes seculi principes , quid in coelo possitis , quantique apud Deum sitis , ac deinceps timeant sanctae Ecclesiae mandata contemnere . Hoc autem iudicium cito in Henricum exercete , vt intelligant omnes , iniquitatis silium non fortuito , sed vestra opera è regno cadere . Hoc tamen à vobis optauerim , vt paenitentia ductus , in die iudicij vestro rogatu , gratiam à Domino consequatur . Actum Romae Nonis Martij ; indictione tertia . Courage then ye most chosen Princes of the Apostles : And what I haue thundered by the deputation of your authorities , ratifie I beseech you ; that now at last all people may vnderstand , that as ye are of power in heauen to binde and to loose : so likewise that you are of no lesse potencie on earth , to giue and to take Empires , Kingdomes and Honors , with whatsoeuer the inhabitants of this world may peculiarly challenge . By the example of this man let Kings and Princes of the earth now learn , what are your prerogatiues in heauen , & what your credits with God , that henceforth they may feare to contempe the awards of Holy Church . Execute I beseech you , this sentence with speede vpon Henry , that all the world may perceiue , that this sonne of iniquity was disinthronized by your operation , and not by destinie . Yet thus much I request of your clemencies , that after repentance , in the day of iudgement , he may obtaine pardon of our Lord at your intercession . Giuen at Rome the Nones of March the third indiction . to the rarenesse and nouelty of which president , ( to auoid exception ) and to confound such quarrelsome spirits , let them heare , what the wisedome of that vpright Bishop Frisingensis , a man for discent , zeale and learning most eminent , reporteth : and the rather for that he was almost an eie-witnesse vnto those times . Lego & relego ( saith he ) Romanorum regum & Imperatorum gesta , & nusquam inuenio quemquam eorum ante hunc a Romano Pontifice Excommunicatum vel regno priuatum . I read and read againe the Chronicles of the Roman kings and Emperors , and in no age can find that euer a Romane Bishop excommunicated or depriued any one of them from his kingdome before this man : meaning Hildebrand . And again in his first book of the gests of Frederick : Gregorius septimus ( saith hee ) qui tunc vrbis Romae Pontificatum tenebat , eundem Imperatorem tanquam a suis destitutum , anathematis gladio feriendum decernit . Cuius rei nouitate eò vehementius indignatione motum suscepit Imperium , quò nunquam ante haec tempora huiusmodi sententiam in Principem Romanorum promulgatam cognouerat . Gregory the seauenth saith he , at that time Pope of Rome resolued to smite with the sword of Excommunication the foresaid Emperor as forsaken of his people . At the nouelty whereof the Empire was so much the rather mooued with indignation , for that before those times , it neuer had known such a sentence to haue been pronounced against the Prince of the Romans . Now with what sequell this Hildebrand striued masteries to arrogate this temporal authority from Henry the fourth . Otto Frisingensis also ( whom Bellarmine , not vndeseruedly , for his parentage , his learning and integrity of life , tearmeth Most noble ) doth relate vnto you . But what mischiefes , what warres , what hazarding of battailes followed hereupon ? How often was miserable Rome besieged , taken , and sacked ? It greeueth mee to record how a Pope was set vp against a Pope , a King against a King. Finally the turmoyle of this tempestuous season produced so many miseries , so many schismes , so many shipwracks of soules and bodies , that those times onely , what by the massacres of persecution , and what by the perpetuity of mischiefes , gaue sufficient arguments to approoue the infelicity of humane misery . So that , those daies were compared by a certaine ecclesiasticall writer to the palpable and darke mists of Aegypt . For the foresaid Bishop Gregory was inforced from the Regall City , and Gibert of Rauenna was thrust into his place . Hereunto , saith one of the tender hearted Romanists , that it mought be that Gregory did this vpon a good intension of the heart , let God iudge ; but it can not be defended , that he did it iustly , discreetly , or by warrant of his calling ; but that he erred foully following the humours and counsels of men , in arrogating that vnto himselfe which was none of his due . Where by the way our aduersaries may learne in auoiding of shedding of Christian bloud , that notwithstanding all the Pope could do by his excommunications , and curses , for fiue and twenty yeeres space , a great faction of the Clergy and Laytie sided with the Emperour , so that Gregories ouersight could be no small fault , in that he called not into his consideration ; That it was the office of so eminent a pastor to haue studied all the points of christianity , peace and humility , by suffering the faults of one man rather to escape vnpunished , then to haue ingaged the innocent and harmelesse people through his priuate desire of reuenge , in an Ocean of misfortunes . For it is manifest that all which we go about in the feruour of zeale , and to good intents , is not alwayes done to good purpose . Moses in zeale to his countryman slew the Egyptian , yet he sinned . Oza in zeale to vphold the Arke of God touched it , and dyed . Peter in zeale to our Lord and his master stroke off Malchas his eare , and yet he was blamed . An inconsiderate zeale doth oftentimes produce mischief and inconuenience . In regard whereof , he ought not to haue excommunicated the Emperour , in participation of whose offence such multitudes of Christian soules were interessed , that without apparant schisme , and disunion of vnity in the Church and common weale , it could not be remedied . This is but the same Councell which for many Ages past , that great light of the Church S. Augustine did religiously and aduisedly admonish vs of , and prooued the warrant thereof out of the writings of S. Paul. Whose opinion the Church from thencefoorth held so forceable , reasonable , and acceptable , that it vouchsafed to auouch it in warrant of their Canons . For confirmation whereof let vs take notice how Hildebrand behaued himselfe after the feeling-smart of these monstrous miseries , by his troubled conscience , and the testimony of antiquity , with reiection of bare assertions , and cauills of dubiae fidei . Pope Hildebrand ( saith our Authour ) alias Gregorie the seuenth , died in banishment at Salerne . Of this man I find it thus recorded . Volumus vos scire , &c. We will that you who are to be carefull ouer the Ecclesiasticall flocke , take notice , that our Apostolicall Lord Hildebrand ( called also Gregory ) now vpon the point of death , called vnto him one of the twelue Cardinalls , whom hee best loued . And he confessed to God , to Saint Peter , and before the whole Church , that he had greeuously sinned in his pastorall Office , committed vnto his charge to gouerne ; and that by the perswasion of the diuell hee had raised greate wrath and hatred amongst the sonnes of Men. Then at last he sent his foresaide Confessor vnto the Emperor and the vniuersall Church , that they would deigne to inuocate his pardon , for that he perceiued that his end drew nigh . And presentlie he put on the Angelicall vestment , and released and reuersed vnto the Emperour , and all Christian people aliue and dead , Clarkes and Laie , the Censures of all his Curses . And commanded all his followers to depart from the house of Deodoricus , and the Emperors friends to aproach . Such were Iohn the nineteenth twentith , and one & twentith . Sergius the fourth . Benedict the eight . Siluester the third . Gregory the sixt . Clement the second . Damasus the second . Leo the ninth . Victor the second . Stephanus the ninth . Benedict the tenth . Nicholas the second . Alexander the second . For from Siluester the second to the time of that most infamous impostor Gregorie the seuenth . All the Roman Bishops applied those studies , and therein far excelled the Aegiptian sorcerers . 4. Blasphemers . LEO the tenth of whom before . Iulius the third . This man made it his common exercise to reason in contempt of the Deity . Was especially delighted in the flesh of Pork and Peacocks : But when the Physitian admonished him to refraine from Hogges-flesh , for that it was an enemie to the gowty disease , wherewith his Holinesse was at that time afflicted , and neuerthelesse would not abstaine . His Physitian , I say , forbad his Steward to serue vp any more Porke . Which when his Holinesse obserued , he demaunded for his dish . His Steward made answere , that his Physitian had forbad it . The Bishop replied , Al dispetto didio , bring me my Pork . Againe , when at dinner time , hee had espied a Peacock , which was not toucht . Keepe me ( quoth he ) this seruice colde for my supper , and let it be ready by an houre ; for I meane to inuite certaine guests . But at supper perceiuing many hote smoaking Peacocks , but missing his colde one ; all pale with anger hee belched out most horrible blasphemy against the diuine Maiesty . Which when one of the guest-Cardinals obserued ; Let not your Holinesse ( quoth he ) be so angry for so small a trifle . Where to Iulius replied : If God were so farre forth angry about an Apple , that therefore he spared not to cast our first Parents out of Paradise , shall it not be lawfull for me ( his Vicar ) to be offended for being cousoned of my Peacock , sithence a Peacock is of more worth then many Apples . 5. For swearers and equiuocators . THe Papal Canons doe teach , that the Romane Bishop , may absolue frō oaths , dispense with vowes , and release a periured person . Whereupon , it is not to be wondred at , to finde so many periured and faithlesse Papists , swarming in euery corner of the world . The Councel of Constance ouer-awed the Emperor Sigismond ( to the violation of his oath ) to deale with Iohn Hus , according to the fore-said Canon , & by that law to burne him : vt supra . Gregory the thirteenth , by the Breue wrote vnto the Papists of England , that Rebus sic stantibus , they might yeeld their obedience to the Queene . Which intimateth nothing else ; but that for the present they may sweare , and vpon occasion dally with their oathes as them best seemeth . Iulius the second , according to the testimony of Guicciardine in his eight book , maintained , That the Romish Bishop might violate his pleighted faith . And this Maxime he taught as well by example , as manner of life . For he not onely by falsifying his faith , cousoned the Cardinals of a huge masse of treasure , but also by the treachery and equiuocation , ingaged the French and Venetians in manifold incumbrances . Siluerius , against his oath of allegeance sworne vnto the Emperour , did his best to betray the City to the Gothes . Gregory the second , hauing forgotten his oath giuen vnto the Emperor , caused Italy to reuolt , and confederated with his enemies . Gregory the seuenth , in a moment forgot what hee had religiously promised and sworne to effect . Pascal the second , after a peace sworn with the Emperor in special & precise termes , as soone as his Popeship had leuied his forces , he charged his Maiestie . Formosus , by breaking his oath , caused most cruell tragedies . Alexander the sixth , for his false faith ( more infamous then Punique ) was most renowmed . Leo the the tenth , against his sworne promise , banished the house of Ruver out of the Dutchy of Vrban . Clement the seuenth , had small regard of his faith . Paul the fourth , and Pius the fifth , excommunicated the English , for not reuolting from their oathes of alegeance . Gregory the fourteenth , threatens that he would doe the like against the subiects of France . Remember the battell of Varna . 6. Turkish Pensioners . CLement the sixth , was euermore very carefull , to keepe the Christian Princes at iarres , so that they could neuer intend to prepare their mindes to thinke vpon the Turk . Alexander the sixth , being willing to make good his supremacy , called in the Turk to assist him against the King of Erance . Alexander the third , betrayed Frederick to the Sultan . Gregory the ninth , by his letters requested the Soldan , not to make restitution of the Holy land , but rather to slay the Emperour , then warring in the Easterne parts . 7. Mad-men and Tyrants . IOhn the thirteenth , put out the eies of some of his Cardinals ; some he depriued of their tongues ; some of their fingers , hands , noses and priuities . Boniface the seuenth , by an ambush tooke Iohn the fifteenth prisoner ; put out his eies ; committed him to prison , starued him , and so became Master of the Popedome . Paschal the second , excommunicated Henry the fourth , being a most religious Prince : prouoked the Sonne to rise in armes against the Father . And to put no period to his hellish Nature , so infinite was his rage towards the dead carcasse , that he commanded it to be digged vp , to be cast out of the Church , and to want Christian buriall by the terme of fiue yeares . Histories record , that Nicholas the third was priuy , nay , author of that Sicilian massacre , from whence sprung the prouerb : vesperae siculae . Iohn the fourteenth : This man deliuered vnto the Hang-man , one Peter the Praefect of Rome : Who stripping him to the skinne , and shauing his beard , by his fatherhoods cōmandement , tied him vnto a Gallowes for a whole dayes space by the haire of the head . Then setting him on an Asse , with his face reuersed , and his hands fastened vnto the beasts taile , hee commanded him so to be shewed in spectacle round about the Citie ; To be scourged , and afterwards banished into Germanie . Gregory the ninth , his fury against the Emperor was vnappeaseable , and would as farre as in him lay , haue vtterly confounded him . Vrban the sixth , vpon a creation of nine new Cardinals , cast seuen of the olde into prison ; sewed fiue in sacks , and cast them into the sea . Boniface the eighth : such ( in partiality of his owne faction ) was the vnquenchable flame of his rancour towards the Gibellins , that vpon report , how some of the side had seated themselues at Genoa ; himselfe made hast to the place , finally to haue destroyed them , and rooted out their race from the memory of Man. Vpon Ashwednesday being according vnto custome to minister Ashes vnto the people , the Bishop of the place ( whom he knew to be a Gibelline ) approached him , & vpon his knees desired his Benediction . Vnto whom his Holinesse ( notwithstanding the reuerence of the place , the frequency of the people , and his religious calling ) where he should haue sprinkled the Ashes vpon his bald pate , he cast them wholly into his eies : Saying : Remember man that thou art a Gibelline , and with the Gibellines thou shalt be turned into Ashes . Innocent the 7. This man tooke such delight in gouerning his affaires with tumult and disorder , that when the Romane Citizens desired him to restore vnto them their auncient priuiledges ; to surrender the Capitol ; to put an end to the Schisme ; to finish the warres , and to bury all memory of seditions . Hee in shew of friendship requested the petitioners to attend his Resolue at his Nephew Lodowicks house ( as good had they beene to haue gone to the hang man ) then dwelling in the Hospitall of S. Eskerit . For foorthwith he murdred eleuen of them , and cast their dead bodies out at the windowes , saying : That by any other counsell it was not possible to finish the warre and the Schisme . Innocent the fourth . As full of fanaticall frensie , accursed Fredericke ; depriued him of all Imperiall dignity ; absolued his people from their oaths of obedience ; insinuated with them to choose another : and to further his vile purposes , deuised infinit scandals to worke the Commons . Clement the sixt that vnmanerly presbyter , rather then he would giue ouer his furious and selfe-wild intendments against the sacred maiesty of an annointed Emperor , fastned his libells vpon euery Church dore . Protesting that vnlesse his maiesty would within three daies take order to satisfie his pleasure , he would impose vpon him his most grieuous censures . Against what poore groome could he proceed more basely ? Stephanus the sixt . Such was his malice against the name of Formosus , that presently he abrogated his decrees ; frustrated his acts , and continuated his rage so far forth against the dead Bishop ; that calling a Synod he caused the body to be digged vp , to be disrobed of all Episcopall habit , and clothed in secular raiment , to be deliuered to lay buriall : From his right hand he cut off two of his fingers , and cast them into Tiber. Sergius the third . This man after eight yeeres rest , caused the body of the said Formosus again to be digged vp : to be placed vpon a papall seig , & to be araigned & condemned to capitall punishment , as if he had beene liuing . From the foresaide hand he caused the other three fingers to be chopt off , and together with the remainder of his body to be throwne into the Riuer , as vnworthy of common buriall . He condemned all his actions , so that they who by him had bin admitted vnto his holy orders , were again fain to be readmitted by his present Popeship . 8. Warriors and Bloodsuckers . INnocent the second after his installment , accounted it his holiest proiect to season his New and high calling with the destruction of Roger Duke of Sicil. Whereupon he flyeth to Armes , marshalleth his forces , and speedily vanquisheth . But by the vnexpected comming in of Roger his sonne , his Popeship is taken , and his Cardinals made prisoners . Iulius the second , in seauen yeeres space was the cause of the slaughter of two hundred thousand Christian soules . He limited a reward to any man that could kill a Frenchman . Marching out of the City accoutred with Pauls sword , and other such holy Furniture , to fight against the French and the confederate Princes : He vnsheathed the blade , and cast the Keyes into Tiber saying : Sithence Peters keies can no longer stead vs , welcome the sword of good S. Paul. Gregory the ninth , receiuing newes of the recouery of Ierusalem , caused the Emperors Embassadors to be murdred . Clement the sixt to effectuate his proper deseignes , from time to time sowed occasions of warre & discord amongst the Christian Princes : and rather then to faile of his purposes , hee would not spare to set them on working by massiue promises , by entertainment , by trecheries and many cunning deuises . Clement the fourth without either formall proceeding or obiection of reason , consented that the Noble Emperour Conradus , the last of the house of Sweuia , should be publiquely beheaded . Sixtus the fourth managed many wars , and was the author of the Pactian league , wherein Iulian de Medices and many other gentlemen miserably miscaried . Innocent the third persecuted Caesar Philip. And is reported to haue boasted : That either the Pope should take the Diadem from Philip , or Philip the Apostolike Miter from Innocent . Paul the third was prepared for great Innouations to be practised against the saints of God. For he raised the German warre . Like vnto him was Alexander the sixt , whome the Papists affirme to bee most cruell . Of whom they vulgarly repeated these verses . If after death Borgia did spue vp blood , Wonder t' is none : For his cold stomack could Not well disgest so great an ingorg'd flood . Onuphrius writeth , that euen a light word was with him a sufficient colour to put any man to death . Vpon what termes the tumults of France were first raised , the league instituted , the massacre contriued , and the warres continued , the closets of Pius the fift , and Gregory the thirteenth , can best testifie . 9. Traitors and mouers of Seditions . ALexander the third , manifestly ingaged himselfe in a plot of treason against Fredericke . For proofe whereof , Frederick summoned a Dyet at Norimberge , assembled the Princes of the Empire , and before them caused the Popes traiterous letter , directed to the Soldan , to be opened , with the meanes of his deliuery . Gregory the second procured all Spaine , AEmylia , Liguria , Italy & other prouinces to reuolt from the Empire : Antichristian-like forbidding the people to pay those tributs , which Christ himselfe had formerly commanded . Sixtus the fourth by entertainement of murdring rascals hauing slaine Iulius of Medices , was the occasion of great tumults in Florence . Gregory the seuenth by plotting of infinit practises , studied to take away the life of Henry the fourth , so far forth that hee would haue murdred him in S. Maries Church , being at his praiers . He soundly buffeted Alexander the second Emperour of the East , and barbarously slew Cincius . Against him ( saith Bembo ) crieth the Bloud of the Church , poured out by his miserable trecheries . Paschal the eleuent , spent the whole course of his life in warre and commotions . Gregory the ninth , by his Legats publiquely commanded the Princes of Germany to depose Fredericke . Guilty of the same treason were Iulius the second . Hadrian the fourth , and Gregory the third . Gregory the thirteenth , the successor of Pius Quintus in impiety and tyrannie was the Author , approuer and commender of the Parisien massacre : then the which the sunne neuer beheld a more Satanical stratagem , whence rose the prouerb ; Nuptiae Gallicae . By the conniuance of Sixtus the fifth , Henry the third , was stabbed to death by a trayterous Monke , and by him the said Murder was exceeding well allowed . 10. Parricids and impoysoners . PAul the 3. impoysoned his mother and Niece , that the whole inheritance of the Farnesian family , might accrue vnto himselfe . His other sister also , whō he carnally knew , vpō fancying of others , he slew by poison . Alexander the sixth , by poison made away Gemen the brother and competitor of Baiazet , for the hire of 200. thousand crownes . And by the like medicine he purged away the life of many Senators & Cardinals . But preparing the like sauce at a supper for some other , by mistaking of the Bottle , himselfe drunk off the prepared cup , and died . Innocent the fourth , being corrupted by rewards , offered a bole of the like liquor to the Emperour Conrade . This the said Emperour verified by his publique letters . Gregory the seuenth , by the ministerie of his companion Brazatus , slew Nicholas the eleuenth with poison . And againe , some Authors affirme , that by the seruice of this wicked villaine , he impoisoned six or eight Cardinals , obstacles in his preferment to the Papacie . Paul the third , did his best , not onely to raise the Christian Princes , against Henry the eight king of England , but also plotted against him some practises of conspiracie . Gregory the thirteenth , loaded with his Indulgences , Parry , and others , to haue laid violent hands vpon Queene Elizabeth . 11. Whoremongers . IOhn the eleuenth . This man , Theodora ( with the more state and pomp to inioy her fractique pleasure ) made first Bishop of Bononia , secondly , Archbishop of Rauenna , and thirdly , Pope of Rome . Christopher the first , who vpon the deposition of Leo , had by the assistance of his female acquaintance , inuaded the Papacie , was againe himselfe , by one Sergius the Amorite of a gallant whore , named Marozia , deposed and shamefully disgraced . Iohn the thirteenth , who liued player-like , not Pope-like , was addicted to all kinde of voluptuous pleasure . Gregory the seuenth , had secret commerce with the Countesse Matilda . Clement the fifth , was a publique fornicator , and kept for his Leman the Countesse of Perigord , a most beautifull Lady , and the daughter of the Earle of Foix. 12. Adulterers . SErgius the third begat Iohn the twelfth , vpon that most impudent whore Marozia : and in his Papacie committed infinite abominations amongst light women , as writeth Luitprandus Ticinensis in his third book and 12. chapter de Imperatorum gestis . Lando the first : This man in fashion of an annointed Batchelor , according to the custome of those daies , consumed the greatest part of his life amongst women ; and was himselfe at last consumed , when he had reigned seuen moneths . Iohn the eleuenth . Theodora , a famous whore and Lady of Rome , was so vehemently in loue with this Iohn ( the bastard of Lando , at his comming to Rome ) that shee not onely desired , but inforced him to keepe her company . And the freer to inioy his company , she caused him to translate the Bishops sea from Rome to Rauenna , as writeth Ticinensis in his second booke . Cap. 13. Iohn the twelfth , the bastard of that famous whore Marozia , spent the time of his whole Papacie , in most bestial sensuality , of him thus writeth Theodorick Niemensis . Being mounted into the Papacie , he was somtime present at the huntings of wilde beasts : the rest of his time hee spent wantonly and pleasantly , and kept company with suspitious women . Iohn the thirteenth . None would serue his turne but virgins , & votaresses . The Lateran Pallace he made his stewes . He defiled Stephana his fathers concubine , the widdow Rayner ; another widdow Hanna ; and his owne Niece . Alexander the sixth , was a most luxurious tyrant : No penne is able to register the rare , beastly and obscene qualities of this most impious Knaue . And such were Iohn the 14.15.21.24 . Benedist the sixt and ninth . Stephan the eighth . 13. Incestuous persons . PAul the third : He , to be made Cardinal & Bishop of Ostia , gaue vnto Alexander the sixth , his sister Iulia Farnese , to be deflowred . Another of his sisters , whom hee kept for his owne store , for playing false with others , he poysoned . Nicholas Quercaeus taking him and his wife Laura Farnese ( though his Niece ) together in company , gaue him such a stab with his dagger , that the scar remained with him to his dying day . Another of his Nieces ( a delicat wench , no lesse admired for her mayden-like modesty , then her choise beauty ) this Goat-like olde Knaue solicited to incest & vnnaturall whoredome . And to inioy his owne daughter Constantia , with more liberty , whom he had often heretofore knowne , he impoysoned her husband Bosius Sfortia . Alexander the sixth , was more familiar with his impudent daughter Lucretia , then stoode with his honestie . Iohn the thirteenth , often times defiled Stephana his fathers concubine . Such an other was Benedict the 3. 14. Sodomits . IVLIVS the second . This man , as we read in a certaine Commentary of the Masters of Paris , abused himselfe with two young gentlemen ( besides others ) whom Anne Queene of France had sent vnto Robert Cardinall of Nantes , to be brought vp and instructed . Iulius the third . Being Legat of Bononia , he vsed one Innocent , his ancient Minion ouer familiarly . Being Bishop , against the mind of the Colledge , he admitteth him his houshold seruant , and createth him one of the Cardinals . The report went at Rome , and dispersed by libells , that Ioue kept Ganimed , but an ill fauoured one . At what time his Holinesse presented this his darling to the Colledge , and euery man denied his consent : for that his presented had neither vertue nor good manners to aduance him : It is reported that he should say : What more saw you in me , I beseech you , when you preferred me to this Papacie ? Wherefore sithence we are all but fortunes tennis-balls , and by her good fauour you haue assisted me : so in like maner be you fauour able to this my boy , and I will create him a Cardinall . But after that some writers had brandished this Catife for his blasphemies and villanies , he procured a fellow as wicked as himselfe , viz. Ierome Mutius , to defend his actions , and thereto he put his approbation . Virgerius writeth , that he abstained not from the Cardinalls themselues . In the time of this incarnate diuill liued , and issued from his priuate closet , that Apostaticall Legat Iohannes à Casa , Archbishop of Beneuent , who in Italian rithmes writ a Poeme in commendation of the sinne of Sodomy ; and Intitled it , Opus diuinum : affirming that he tooke great delight therein , and neuer knew any other venery . Leo the tenth made alwaies very much of his carkasse , and gaue his mind to all variety of pleasure , but especially to the loue of boies . Sixtus the fourth built a famous brothell house at Rome , and dedicated it to both Sexes . Wessell of groning reporteth in his treatise of Popish Indulgences , that at the requestes of Peter Ruerius ( his Fatherhoods Catanut ) as also at the instance of S. Sixtus Cardinall and Patriarch of Constantinople , and Ierome his brother ; his Holinesse graunted his faculty to all the houshold seruants of the Cardinall of S , Luce , chiefe hunts-man vnto Paul the eleuenth ( a fearefull thing to be spoken ) in the hot months of Iune , Iulie , and August , to vse the masculine sinne ; signing the Bull with this clause : Fiat quod petitur . Petrus Mendoza called Cardinall Valentinian , not contented with a troope of euill women , nor satisfied with the Queene her selfe ; desired and oft obtained of Alexander the sixt to vse in holy single-life , as his best beloued spouse , his bastard Sonne the Marquesse of Zaneth . Iohn the four and twentith was accused in the Counsell of Constance , to haue been a Sodomit , an adulterer , and a whoremonger . Clement the seuenth . Of him it is recorded in a certaine Commentary vppon the Articles of the Masters of Paris , that hee was , a bastard , a poysoner , a Man-slayer , a Pandar , a Symonianist , a Sodomit , a Periurer , a deflowrer , a Rauisher , a Geomancer , a Church-robber , and a plotter of all villanies . Such like were Benedict the third , Iohn the thirteenth , fourteenth and Paul the third . Hence complaineth Luit prandus , that the Lateran pallace became by time and sufferance to be a receptacle of vncleane persons . 15. The Fauorites of Whores . VICTOR the third obtained the Papacy , neither by the choice of the Cardinals , nor by the suffrages of the people , but was thereunto hoysted by his Mistrisse Matilda with the assistance of the Normans . Vrban the second , and Victor , by the same party and like meanes , obtained the like preferment . Iohn the eleuenth , by the wealth of Theodora an impudent gamester , ran the same fortune . Paul the third had a roll of forty fiue thousand whores , of whom he exacted a monthly tribut . And no wonder , for if fame deceiue not , I haue heard it reported by men of good experience , that Rome is a City consisting of about fiue thousand soules , whereof a third part were accounted to bee light weomen and Church-men . Sextus the fourth was very bountifull towards their maintenance , and had to spare for his friends and seruants . It should seeme hee augmented their numbers ; for their hyer prooued very aduantagious to his Exchequer , euery whore being rated to pay weekly to his Holinesse behoofe , a peece of their Coine , termed a Iulius . The yeerely Entrado whereof many times amounteth to the yeerly value of foure hundred thousand dukats . And the Officers of the Church doe as duely make their accounts for this Entrado , as for any other of the Churches reuenues . Lucius the third ratified the sacring of whooremongers . Iohn the thirteenth being deposed for his enormious villanies , the weomen of his old acquaintance by promising the Romane nobility their rewards out of the Churches treasure , inuited them to Armes , and wrought his restitution . Iohn the eight . Shee was at first called Gilberta ; but counterfaiting the virill Sex , and the habit of a young man , went first to Athens with a Monke her sweete heart . Where after her great proficiency in the Arts , and the death of her friend , Shee returned alone to Rome , but alwayes in her late disguise . Where in all disputations , behauing her selfe for eloquence and readinesse of acute answers with admiration , shee so gayned the good esteemes of all her Auditorie , that Leo beeing dead , shee was chosen Pope , and sate in Peters Chayre two yeeres and sixe moneths . During her Popedome she was gotten with child by a familiar friend , her Chapleine , and in a solemne Procession , betweene the Colosse and Saint Clements Church shee fell in trauaile , and in the middest of the City , in the streetes , and before all the people , she brought foorth a Sonne , and through paine died in the place . Certainlie it can not bee doubted , but that God suffered this whore to bee Pope , to represent in plaine termes that Babylonian creature , spoken of in the 17. of the Apocalips , to the end that of her selfe , and her inchantments , the Elect might beware . 16. Bawdes . PAul the third , surrendred his sister Iulia Fernese vnto Alexander the sixth , to be defloured . Sixtus the fourth , by the testimony of Agrippa , amongst the moderne Pandors , was the most eminent ; As the man who excelled all other builders in the edifying of that most stately brothel-house , which he dedicated to both sexes . 17. Bastards . MArtin the eleuenth , by a common woman , was the sonne of a Negromantique Priest . So was Iohn the eleuenth , begotten by Pope Lando . Item , Iohn the twelfth , begotten by Sergius the third vpon Marozia . Item , Iohn the fourteenth , then sonne of Iohn the twelfth . Item , Iohn the sixteenth , the sonne of Leo a Priest . Item , Benedict the eighth , the sonne of Bishop Gregorie . Item , Iohn the seuenteenth , another sonne of the same Gregory . Item , Siluester the third , the sonne of the Arch-priest Lawrance . Item , Adrian the fourth , the sonne of Monk Robert. Item , Eugenius the fourth , the sonne of Gregory the twelfth , Pope . Item , Clement the seuenth , the son of Leo the tenth . Item , Gregory the ninth , the sonne of Innocent the third . Item , Adrian the fifth , the son of Innocent the fourth . Item , Gregory the eleuenth , the sonne of Clement the sixth . 18. Drunkards . LEo the tenth , and Nicholas the fifth were famous for the loue of their liquor . 19. Couetous persons . THeodore of Niem , did long agoe delineat the Auarice of the Romane Bishops . For hee compared the Popes Exchequer to the Ocean , whereunto all Riuers paid tribute , and yet was it neuer satisfied . Histories do affirme , that at one gleaning the Popes had out of France ninety hundred thousand crownes . Whereupon Lewes the ninth complained , that his Kingdome was miserably exhausted by these Harpies . The wealthy Kingdome of England to be miserably impouerished , partly by tithes , partly by procurations of the Apostolique Legats , partly by donatiues , and partly by the sale of Benefices , Mathew Paris in his time did much complaine . In those daies , sayeth hee , Pope Gregory either so permitting or procuring ; the insatiable auarice of the Romane Clergy , grew to be so feruent , that without any sparke of modesty ( confounding all law and equity , as a common and brasen-faced-Harlot ) set all to sale to all sorts of persons , and reputed Vsury as a trifle , and Simony as a matter of no inconuenience . Germany was pillaged after the same fashion . By warre and cunning , the Pope wrested from the Emperour his lawfull Patrimonies , some after some , throughout Italy . By harlots they make also rich purchases ; they put out their mony to Interest , and account no gaine , base or vnlawfull 20. Church-robbers . BOniface the seuenth , when he saw that it was no longer safe for him to reside at Rome , priuily and feloniously he purloyned certaine rich tresurers out of the Church of Saint Peter , and fled to Constantinople . Clement the seuenth , was accused for periurie , sacriledge , and impoysoning , &c. 21. Simonianists . FRom Gregory the ninth , Caesar obtained his absolution for the price of one hundred thousand ounces of gold . Benedict the ninth , being strucken with feare ; for one thousand and fiue hundred pounds , solde the Papacie to his Chapman Iohn Gratian , afterward called Gregory the sixth . Hereupon Iohn the Monk complained , that Rome was founded by theeues , and so continued vntill this day , to liue by spoiles . And Alan Chartierius , saith , you haue made the diuine sanctuary a banke of Exchange . Alike in conscience were Leo the tenth . Innocent the eighth , Siluester the third , Gregory the sixth , Gregorie the twelfth , Iohn the eighteenth , &c. So that Bernhard also complained , That the Holy offices of the Church were become meerely questuarie . 22. Ambitious persons . IOhn the foure and twentieth , by ambition onely affected the Papacie . For by the testimony of Stella , when he liued at Bononia , he carried himselfe more like a Lord then a Legat ; He was gouernour of a great Armie , and vnto him the fathers were glad to resort to elect a new Pope ; he gaue out many vnder hand-threats , that vnlesse they would present one to the Papacie , whō without exception , himselfe should very well like of , he should not preuaile . Whereupon , many were nominated , of whom he meant neuer to approue one . Whereupon , the Fathers beseeched him to name the man whom he best fancied . Then giue me Peters cloake ( quoth he ) and I will bestow it on him that shall be Pope . Which being done , he cast the cloake vpon his owne shoulders , saying , Behold your Pope . Which stratagem , though it displeased the Fathers , yet they thought it fitter to be silent , then to aggrauate displeasure . Iohn the three & twentith , was a man most ambitious , writing vnto the Greekes , That hee onely was head of the Church , and Christ his Vicar . Vnto whom the Grecians re-answered in as many words . We constantly acknowledge thy high authority ouer thy subiects : thy high pride we can not indure ; thy auarice wee are not able to satisfie . The diuell be with thee ; the Lord is with vs. So Iohn the two and twenteth , after a long vacation , being made Cardinall by the Councel of Naples ; being intrusted with the election , elected himselfe : which by the Canons he could not doe . So Boniface the third that ambitious beast , in the midst of a tumultuous number , ( yet many gainesaying it ) was heaued into the Papacy ; confirmed , worshipped , and saluted Lord and Prince of all Bishops by that adulterous Emperor , parricide and tyrant , Phocas . Afterward by ardent importunity , or rather by his immoderate bribery , he obtained , that Rome should be called the Head of all the christian Churches , vppon these idle reasons forsooth : That the Empire first took his origen from Rome , and so Peter gaue vnto his successors of Rome the Keies , &c. Read the history of Phocas and this Boniface , to be further satisfied of their mutuall knaueries . Let Paschal the eleuenth ranke with these fellowes . For when William procurator and Clarke to king Henry , speaking in his masters right , amongst other reasons constantly affirmed : That the King had rather loose his kingdome , then the Inuestiture of Prelats : the Pope made this proud reply . If as thou saiest , thy master will not suffer the Ecclesiasticall presentations to bee alienated from him , for the losse of his kingdome ; then take thou notice precisely , I speake it before God , that neither I without the price of his head will suffer him to inioy them quietly . Clement the sixt answered the Embassadors of Lewes the Emperor as arrogantly : That he would neuer pardon his Maiesty , before he had resigned his Imperiall right , sequestred himselfe , his children , and all his goods into his custody , and promised neuer to retake them but by the Bishops grace and good liking . So great was the spirit of Boniface the eight , that almost he disdained all men . For such was his ambition , that he suborned certaine companions in lieu of Angels with a soft voice by night , to sound in the chamber of Pope Celestine , that he should voluntarily resigne the Popedome , if hee meant to saue his life . Which the simple man performed accordingly . But Boniface contrary to Law and equitie , stepping into the Popedome , layd violent hands vpon Celestine trauelling out of Rome , to lead his life in some solitary mansion , and cast him into perpetuall prison . The same Boniface instituted the Iubile , and celebrated it , in the yeere of our Lord 1300. promising to all people that would visit rhe City , full remission of their sinnes . He reiected an Embassie sent from the Emperor Albert. Vpon the first day of the solemnity , he appeared in his Pontificalibus , and bestowed his benedictions vpon the people . The next day he came foorth accoutred like an Emperor , and commanded a naked sword to be borne before him , with this acclamation : Behold here two swords . This is the right I haue to kingdomes and Empire ; they are all in my disposition . The kings of the earth , vnlesse they will receiue their kingdome from this holy Sea , are to be accursed and deposed ▪ Finally hee gloried in his pride , that he was the porter of Heauen , and ought to be adiudged by no man. Adrian the fourth did grieuously chide Fredericke the Emperor for holding his left stirrope , as he came from horse . vt supra . fo . Alexander the third in more base manner vsed an other Emperor as before . fo . Stephen the second deposed Childerick , and preferred Pipin to his place . He shaued Childericks crowne , and thrust him into a monastery . Pipin lay agroofe vpon the earth , kissed the Popes toe , held his horse by the bridle , performed the office of a footman , and gaue him his oath of perpetuall fidelity . Damasus the second . This man was Chancellour to his predecessor ; but his ambition not able to stay the death of his master , it is reported , that he gaue him a dram to dispatch him . Constantine the first . This man was the first that put his foot to be kissed by an Emperor . Benedict the third followed the president , and suffered himselfe to be worshipped as a most holy Father , or rather like a terrene Idoll . Iohn the seuen and twentith did the like to Crescentius the Roman Consul . Martin the fift to Sigismund Caesar . Leo the fourth gaue his foot to all commers , and against the Canons of the Aquisgran Councel , first aduanced a Papall crosse , and adorned it with pretious stones , commanding it to be caried before him . Of the like stampe were Boniface the first , Symmachus , Boniface the second , Siluerius , Martin the second , Formosus the first , Theodorus the second , Benedict the fourth , Sergius the third , Iohn the tenth , Gregory the sixt , &c. 23. Monsters . BEnedict the ninth . Historiographers doe write that this Benedict was seene neere a certaine Mill by an Hermit in a most horrible shape . His body was like a Beare , adioyned thereto the head and taile of an Asse . And being asked by him , how he came to be thus metamorphosed : It is reported , that he answered : In this shape doe I wander , for that in my Popedome I liued without reason , without God , and without limitation . Nicholas the third begat a sonne on his Concubin , who had hayre and clawes like vnto a Beare . Vide Iohannem Nouiomagum . 24. Illiterate persons . BEnedict the eleuenth was a meere Laique . And so were Benedict the ninth , Sergius the third , Eugenius the fourth , Iohn the ninth , Iohn the one and twentith , &c. OF THE FALL AND DEATH OF certaine Romane Bishops . ADrian the third flying from Rome , came vnto Venice in the Habit of his Cooke : where he lurked in a certaine monastery , and was made the Gardiner of the garden thereof . Iohn the fiue and twentith trauelling towards Constance fell headlong from his litter : a presage of his future deposition . For many faults beeing obiected against him in the Councell , he began to flie : but being taken and preuented ; he was cast into prison , and there remained for three yeeres . Siluerius Campanus was banished into Pontus by Theodora the wife of the Emperor Iustinian . The same Theodora her selfe impleaded Vigilius for not perfourming his word : arrested him to Constantinople ; there contumeliously disgraced him , whipped him , cast an halter about his neck ; caused him to be haled through all the streets of the City , and finally banished him . Constantinus the second , was eiected by a Councel : and beeing depriued aswell of his eies as of his Popedome , he was cast into a monastery , and after into a perpetuall prison . Benedict the fift was depriued of his papall dignity , and sent into banishment . Stephen the eight was so sorely wounded in a popular tumult , that for the deformity of his wound , hee was neuer after willing to shew himselfe in publique . Innocent the fourth died miserably . Robert of Lincoln reproued his vile behauiour , his auarice , his pride , and his tyranny , and that as well by word of mouth , as by writing . For which the Pope citeth him to Rome , and iniuriously condemneth him . From him Robert appealeth vnto Christ as his Iudge . Vpon the death of Lincolne ( as writeth Cestriensis lib. 7. ) a voice is heard in the Court of Rome , crying ; Miserable man , make ready to come to the tribunall of God. Vpon the day following the Pope is found dead in his bed , and vpon his body appeared a blewish blow , as if he had been strucken with a cudgell . Siluester the second beeing at Masse was attached with a suddain feuer ; and by the noise of spirits ( witnesse Peter Praemonstratensis ) he perceiued that his end drew nigh , to pay the diuell his due vpon composition . He confessed his errors , and ( as saith Benno ) preuented a miserable and fearefull destruction . Yet in the anguish of death , he desired that his hands , his tongue , and his priuities , wherewith euen in his single life , he had blasphemed God , by sacrificing to diuels , might be cut off . Nicholas the third in midst of his greatest imaginations , was taken with an apoplexy , and without one word speaking breathed his last . Paul the second hauing merrily supped , was also taken with the apoplexy , and departed , without sight of any man. Paschal the second was taken by the Emperour , and thrust into prison . Gelasius the eleuenth . One Cinthius a powerfull patrician of the City made an assault vpon him , tooke him by the throat , cast him to the earth , spurnd him with his feet , and cast him into prison . Boniface the eight , Grown desperate with the ouerwaight of fury , gaue vp his vnhappy ghost loden with an infinit heape of mischieuous actions . This is that Pope , of whom it is recorded , That he entred as a wolfe , liued as a Lyon , and dyed as a Dog. Gregory the sixt was taken prisoner , and sent into banishment . Gregory the seuenth for his innumerable wickednesses was deposed by the Emperor Henry , and in banishment ended his daies . Eugenius the fourth priuily flying in a monasticall coole , together with his friend Arsenius , entred a fisher-boat . Vpon report whereof , his enemies followed to seeke him with stones and shot . Clement the seuenth , for his conspiring with the French King against the Emperour , was made prisoner by Charles his Captaines , and wonderfully derided by the Germane souldiers . Iohn the eleuenth , was taken by the souldiers of Guido , committed to prison , & stifled with a sirplice thrust into his mouth . Boniface the eleuenth died suddenly . Iohn the eighth , not that teeming woman , but a man , died together with his Crescentius , hauing his eies first put out , and his whole body mangled . Benedict the eleuenth , was poisoned at an Abbesses banquet with a dish of figges . Benedict the sixth , no doubt for such like malapert practises , as in these dayes Popes play with mightie Princes , was taken by one Cinthius , a powerfull Roman Citizen , thrust into the Mole of Hadrian , now Saint Angelo , the prison of the basest offendours , and there miserably strangled . Hadrian the fourth : Into his mouth slew a flie , which could not be taken out , nor thrust downe , by any Art of the Physitian : so that it stopped his breath , and choked him . Lucius the second , with an armed band , assaulted the Citizens in the Capitol , of purpose vtterly to destroy the whole Senate . The newes runneth through the City : the people fly to Armes : and a strong fight is managed . Lucius ingaging himselfe in the hottest of his armed troupes , is so mauled with stones and shot , that a little while after he surrendred his life . Iohn the two and twentith . At the instant wherein he promised vnto himselfe a long continuance of his life , was suddenly taken away , and was alone found buried amongst timber and rubbish , by the fall of a chamber . Clement the sixt was suddenly taken with an Apostume , and died . Leo the tenth suddenly died with an astonishing disease . Leo the third was so odious vnto the people , that in a certaine Procession being cast from his horse ; they dispoyled him of his pontificall ornaments ; buffeted him well fauouredly , and committed him to prison . And as some report , they depriued him both of his eies and his tongue . Christopher the first being deposed from the Papacy , was constrained to lead a monasticall life . Not long after he was taken from the said monastery by Sergius his successor , and committed to a most seuere prison , and there ended his daies in great misery . ¶ These vnder written were poisoned . IOHN the sixteenth , nineteenth , & twentith . Clement the second . Damasus the second . Leo the ninth . Victorinus the second . Nicholas the second . Alexander the second . Victorinus the third . Gregory the eight . Celestine the fourth . Vrban the sixt . Alexander the fift . Clement the seuenth . Thus much for their manners : and now to stop the mouthes of those who cry out ; what is this to Religion ? Behold here for a conclusion , not the fruits , but the very points , some few for a taste of these their irreligious documents . BLASPHEMIES OF THE CANONISTES . THE Bishop of Rome is God. Dist. 96. ca. Satis euidenter . 2. The Pope is not man. Lib. 1. Sexti de electione . tit . 6. ca. Fundamenta in Glossatore . 3. The Pope is neither God , nor man. In prologo clementinarum in glossatore . 4. It is lawfull for no man to imagine or practise to transgresse the precepts of the Apostolicall Sea. Dist. 20. ca. Nulli . Item dist . 12. & 22. 5. An Heretique is hee who is not obedient to the Popes decrees . ibid. in gloss . 6. He is guilty of Sacriledge , that belieth the Pope : For he supplieth the place of the liuing God on earth . De paenit . dist . 1. ca. libenter ignosco . 7. The Pope is the vniuersall Bishop through al parts of the earth . Lib. 5. Sexti . ca. faelicis . in gloss . 8. The Pope is Lord of all principalities vpon earth . Li. 3. Sexti . tit . 16. cap. Periculoso . 9. Let no man dare to say vnto the Pope , Lord why dost thou doe thus , or thus ? In extrau . tom . 22. tit . 5. ca. ad Apostolatus in gloss . 2. li. 1. Decretal . tit . 7. ca. 5. vide gloss . 10. The Pope by vertue of these words , Thou art Peter : or , feede my sheepe , obtaineth primacy . In praemio Sexti in gloss . 11. No mortall man may sit in iudgement vpon the Pope . Caus . 9. quaest . 3. c. nemo . Item aliorum . & dist . 40. ca. st Papa . Caus . 12. quaest . 2. ca. quisquis . in gl . dist . 40. ca. non nos . in gloss . 12. It is lawfull for no creature to call into question the iudgement of the Apostolique Sea , or to delay the sentence thereof . Caus . 17. quaest . 4. c. nemini . 13. The Pope may dispence against the Apostles . dist . 34. collector in gloss . dist . 82. ca. presbiter . in gloss . caus . 15. quaest . 6. ca. Authoritatem . in gloss . 14. The Pope hath celestiall arbitrement . Li. 1. decr . Greg. tit . 1. ca. 5. 15. The Pope may change the Nature of things . ibid. 16. The Pope of nothing can make something ibid. 17. The Popes will is a Law. ibid. 18. The Pope may dispense aboue the law . ibid. 19. The Pope may cause an vniust decree to be receiued for iust . ibid. 20. The Pope hath fulnesse of power . ibid. 21. As is the difference betweene the Sunne and the Moone . such is the difference between the Pope and a King. Li. 1. decre . Greg. tit . 33. solitae . 22. Persons vniustlie condemned and oppressed ought to seeke redresse and amends from the Church of Rome . Caus . 2. quaest . 6. c. ideo . Last of all , By these Mens Liues , Manners , and Doctrine new , Pen'd by the trauaile of my Pen ; O you , Who read the leazings of this false-mouth'd crue , Learne these their Liues , Words , Maners to eschue . CONTRADICTIONS MORE REAsonable , then Canonisticall . A Learned and noble preacher ( if any such be amongst the Iesuits ) being demaunded his iudgement concerning the opinion of Bozius ( a more peremptory Champian for the Canonists then any of his fellowes ) Eum vocabat Papalem parasitum , viz. termed him a Papall parasite . Gaguin a learned and religious historiographer , in his time , thus taxeth this their irregular vsurpation : Such is ( saith he ) at this day their haughtinesse and Lordship , that hauing small respect vnto Princes , they boast that all things are lawfull vnto themselues soly . Neither in my Age did any of them ascend the Papacy , but forthwith hee enriched his nephewes with infinit wealth , and honours . S. Bernard long before Gaguin : Doth not now ambition more then deuotion , possesse the Apostolicall succession ? Hereupon said Platina : In this maner dyed that Boniface , who studied more to terrifie , then to teache Kings , Princes , and nations . Who for his pleasure made it a matter of pastime , to giue and retake kingdomes , to interdict Nations , and absolue them afterwards . Gaguin againe ; Such was the end of Boniface , the scorner of all men : who hauing no remembrance of his Master Christ , did his vtmost , according to his priuate fancy , to take and to giue kingdomes . When meane time , he was not ignorant , that he was his vicegerent vpon earth , whose kingdome was not of this world , nether compounded of earthly , but of heauenly perquisits , &c. Pius the fift said vnto Martin Aspibeneta ; That the Lawyers ( meaning the Canonists ) accustomed to attribute plus satis potestatis , more then reasonable supereminency to the Papacy . No wonder then , if I. Gers . termed them pusillos , that is , weake and simple Christians , who being deceiued ( his own words ) by vnlearned Glossors , doe esteeme the Pope onely to bee God , hauing all power in heauen and in earth . Certainly , tales adulatores , such Parasites haue corrupted the iudgement and dispositions of many Popes . As concerning whome , Iohan. de turre-cremata thus censureth . It is a wonder ( saith he ) that the Popes doe treat so modestly of their Patent of Power , and yet certaine Doctorculi , vpstart Doctors without any true ground will , to flatter them , euen equalize them to God himselfe . In the same list doth Cardinall Cusanus ranke certaine other Authors ; Who ( saith he ) indeauouring more then befitteth , or beseemeth holy Church , to make famous the Roman Sea ( in truth worthy all commendation ) spare not to ground themselues vpon Apocriphall writings . Verbum sapienti . FINIS . Notes, typically marginal, from the original text Notes for div A14210-e840 John 18. Matth. 20 John 6. Luke 12. Marke 12. Matth. 17. Sanguis martyrum semen Ecclesiae . Plati . in the life of Iohn xiij . Platina in the life of Benedict the fif● . See also Krantzius lib. 4. cap. 9. Naucler . general 34. Plat. in vita Gregorij V. Cuspinian & Theod. de Nyem in the life of Otho the third . Cardinal Benn● of the l●fe and gests of Hildebrand . Benno . Plati . in the life of Siluester the third and Gregorie the sixt . Of this Matilda , whence and what she was , see Krantzius lib. 5. Saxon. Formula decreti extat . C. si quis deinceps . Vide formulam abrogationis apud Plat in . in vita Gregorij . 7. Be● no. Benno . Nauclerus generatione 36. Vrspergensis . Platina in loco ante citato . The Pope will deale surely . The forme of the Curse is extant in Platina . Vrsperg . fol. 238 doth witnesse this conference betweene the King and the Bishops . See the iudgement of God. Abbas Vrsperg . Ab. Vrsperg . Helmoldus in his 30. cap. of the hist . of S●lad Krantz . and innumerable others . I hope the Romanists of this age are not behind for shifts ▪ &c. Benno . A● . Vrsperg , Aue i●inus . Naucler . Krantzius li. 5. c. 22. Vrsperg . 362. Helmold . in the annals of Sclauony . li. 1. ca. 32. See more hereof D. Barlo 240. at full . See Krantz . lib. 5. Vrsperg . fo . 264 H. Mutius seuenteenth of his Cronicles . C. Adrian . c. in synodo 63. distinct . c inter vos . A Pretext for Periurie . Otho frising . li. 7. ca. 17. Nauclerus gen . 38. Nauel . gen . praeallegata , saith that this was done at Leyden , before his iourny into Jtaly . Otho Frising . and Naucler . in the fore alleged places . Cusp . in the life of Lotharius of Saxonie . Naucl. Gen. 38. Hominem fieri . Cuspin . in the life of Conrade . Naucler out of Antoninus and Godfridus Gen. 38. Nauc . gen . 38. & 32. Bartolus in a peculiar book of the Guelphs and Gihellines . Panorm . in c. Lucanis & Pisanis de rest . spol . Cuspin . in the life of Fred. the second . Plati . in the life of Bonef . the eight . Naucle . gen . 44. Nauel , vbisupra . Raaouicus li. 3. Funcius li. 10. Chro. Barnus de vitis Pontif. Helmold . in the Cro. of Sclauony ca. 81. Barnus in vita . Hadriani , ex Johan . de Cremona . Frising . li. 2. cap. 21. If the Pope can not haue Apulia presently , he must haue gold without excuse . Cronicon Hersaugiense in vita Hartuigi abbatis . Radenious li 3. num . 3. & 10. Nauel . Gen. 39. Radeuicus li. 3. ca. 9.10 . Radeuicus vbi supra . Nauel fo . 761. Gen. 39. Nau. fo . 792. The Epistle is to be seen in Radeuicus li. 3. c. 15. Notable policy cunning and hypocrisie . Iacob . Spigelius in annotat . ad Ligurinum Gunthori . li. 6. fol. 143. Epist . extat li. 3. ca. 16. in Radeuicus . Auent . li. 6. Annal . Boior . so . 636. Nau. Gen. 39. Auenti . loco prae allegato . Rade . li. 3. cap. 17. Nau. Gen. 39. ex Joh. Cremonensi . Radeuicus li. 4. ca. 40. & 4. Guntherus in Ligucinoli 9. circa finem . Ab. vrsperg . Plat. in vita Alex. Nauc . Gen. 39. Rad. li. 4. ca. 54. Behold the Emperiall iurisdiction solicited . Radeu. li. 4. cap. 58. Generall councels ominous to Popes . C. Patet . & canemo 9. q. 3. Item 17. q. 4. ca. Si quis suadente in extremo . Item dist . 40. c. si papa . Naucl. gen . 39. Nauc . gen . 39. Naucl. vbi supra . Nauc . gen . 40. Vrspergens . Nau gen . 40. Abbas vrspergensis . Tritemius in Cronico Hiersaug . sub abbate volmaro . so . 175. Nau. ge . 39. fol. 765. Platin. in vitae Alex. Nau. gen . 41. Blondus & alij . Io. Cremonensis . Barnus Author vitae Frederici Germanice scriptae . Did not the Bishops of England so by Henrie the fift . Haec subsequentia Naucl. gen . 40. narrat . vt et alij pontisicij , praecedentibus tamen omissis . Naucl. generat . allegata . Platina in the life of Celestin the third . Bergomensis in supplemento & eum sequens Nau. gen . 40. Nauel . gen . 40. Cuspinian in vita Henrici & Philippi . Naucl. gen . 41. Vrsperg . fo . 323. See Guicciardine . Naucl. gen . 41. Vrsperg . in the life of Otho the 4. Naucl. gen . Cuspinian in vita Frederici . Pandulphus Collomitius . Pandulfus in vita Frederici . Vrsperg . & Alij . O Rome . Cuspinian in the life of Fredericke . Cuspinian . Platina in the life of Gregory . Naucl. gen . 41. Platina citans . Collomitius , quem prae caeteris , vide . Platina in vita Gregorij noni . Petrus de vineis li. 1. ep . 33. Collenutius & Cuspinian in vita Frederici . Hieron . Martius . Cusp . in vita Frederici . Nauc . gen . 42. Epi. extat in epistolis Petri de Vineis . epist . 32. De hac coniuratione vide ep . 10. & 52. li. 2. Rursus epi. 19. & 62. li. 3. See D. B. 290. So did it in the powder treason . Platina in vita Clementis quarti . Nauel . gen . 43. So alwaies Pap. cauill . Herein let all Christians note the beginning , progresse and sequell of all Popish practises . Mutius . li. 21. Naucl. gen . 44. Naucl. vbi supra . Paralip . Vrsp . Cuspi . in vitae . Alberti . Paralip . V●sperg . Naucl. gen . 44. Doct. B. fo . 68. S. E. H. fo . 48. Mutius lib. 23. Cuspinian . Vide C. pastoralis , desententia & re iudicat . in Clement . Rhithmi de morte Henrici impressi hunc proditorem veneficum Paulinum vocant . Cuspin . in vita Ludouici Pulchri . Naucl. gen . 46. Naucl. gen . 45. Plati . in vita Benedict . 12. Cusp . in vita Ludouici . Apud . Na Decretum hoc extat gen . 45. Naucl. gen . 45. Naucl. vbi supra . Cuspin . Marius . Cuspin . & Paralip . Vrsperg . Paralip . V●sp . Parap . vrsp . Naucl. gen . 45. Cuspin . in vitae Guntheri . Idem in vitae Caroli . Auont . li. 7. Theodor. de Nyem . Zeigl . de viris illustribus Germaniae . ca. 91. Krant . li. 1. c. 3. Tritemius in Cron. Hirsang . Aeneas Siluius ca. 3. hist . Bohemic . De his & alijs quam plurimis prolixè vide Theod. de Nyem in nemore suo iam edito . c. 71. Zeigl . de viris illustribus Ger. ca. 83. Naucl. gen . 47. Theod. de Nyem . li. 2. ca. 14. Theod. de Nyem . li. 3. ca. 53. Naucl. gen . 48. Parap . vrsp . Cuspinian . Platinan vita Martini quinti , praeter alios . Plat. in vita Eugenij . 4. Vuimphelinagus in Epit. rerum Germani carum . Naucl. gen . 49. Epist . extat . infine clemangis in fasciculo rerum repetundarum ante aliquot annos Coloniae impressa . VVork layd out on another frontier by the Court of Rome , when reformation is spoken of . Vide Paralip . Vrsp . Munster . in Cosmog . Naucl. in vlt. gen . Note . Note againe . Hubertus Golt . & Hutenus . Naucl. gen . 49. Mutius li. 29. Cuspinian in vita Maximil . & Zelemi Othomanni . Mut. li. 3. Hubertus Goltz . Paral. Vrsp . Hubert . Goltz . Mutius lib. 3. Paralip . Vrsp . Arnoldus Feronius in vita Francisci Valesij . Catal. testium veritatis . Jouius li. 4. de vita Leonis decimi . The Pope is now French. A truer Prophesie , then the Pope was aware of . Appendix ad Plati . Sleid. vbi supra . Now Imperial . Resp . Caesaris ad breue Apostolicum . Againe French. And lastly Imperiall . Gerardus Moringus in vita Hadriani vi . Iouius in vita eiusdem . Feronius in vita regis Francisci . Resp . Caesaris ad breue Apostolicum . Feronius . As Leo : So Iulius . As Leo and Iulius , so the residue : viz. wethercocks , for aduantage . Sleyd . li. 4. Feronius in vita Francisci . Iouius li. 7. in vita F. Daui . Sleyd . li. 6. Feronius vbi supra . Like for like , by Caesar to the Pope . If such the men continually , thē what their Religion ? Haec omnia exposita exstant apud Sleyd . li. 17. vsque ad lib. 23. To winne time . Mamb . Roseus li. 4. appendicis ad Historiam Neapolita . Pādulphi Collenutij haec latè explicat . Sleid. li. 21. l. 26. M. Roseus li. 4. append . ad Hist . Neopolit . Hiero. Rosellus de bello Romano . Guil. Zenocarus de vita caroli . 5. At Saint Quintins . No true Popish motion : but in these dayes the Turk is growen too neere a neighbour . Mustipha ac Famagusta . Tunc tua res agitur , &c. Read the Turkish Historie for the bottome of their inforced lenities . Vide de hoc constit . Lodouici 4. apud Alberic . de Rosate L. Benè a Zenone C. de quadrien . praescript . Lib. de concord . Cathol . cap. 4. Strange conclusions in Poperie . Note the Euasion . Inseruiendum est tempori . VVitnesse France , Belgia , and Hungarie . Onely because it reformed Popery . For the more credit , you shall haue his owne words . Lib. 5. cap. 11. See the text . As Lewes the eleuenth in France . 2. King. 15. 2. Paral. 26. Saunders . 2. Kings 4. Spaine . 1568. Chro. Belg. Portugal . 1578. Chro. Bel. France . 1572. Hist . Gal. Anno. 1572. Hist . G●● Anno. 1589. Chro. Bel. Anno. 1594. Cat. Ies . 482. Chro. Belg. Eug. 1588.1594.1597 . Cat Ies . 436. & 448. Anno. 1607. Sweueland . 1593. Or Pol. b. 4. Praef. cat . Ies . Polon . Moscouia . Netherland . a By Boniface the eight . b By Iulius the second . c By Clement the seuenth and Paul the third . d By Pius the fist . Notes for div A14210-e36990 Lib. 3. cap. 2. cont . ep . parmeniani . Can. Non potest . 23. q. 4. In Cronograph . Anno. 1085. Sig. In Cronograph . Anno. 1085. One of the Popes best benefactors . A good Pope , that would not in those daies touch an Emperor before he had become a priuate person . A Popish miracle . Note what persons the Pope bindeth to his seruice . Note . Notes for div A14210-e45730 If it were a true confession , no doubt . Notes for div A14210-e47760 B. De potest . pa pae . so . 6. Li. 10. Hist . Fr. in vita Caroli vij . Lib. 3. de Consid . ad Eug. In vita Bonisacij . Li. 7. hist . in vita Philippi Pulchri . Nauar. in Com. Can. Non liceat Papae . 12. q. 2. In Cano. Coniunctio . 35. q. 2.